| Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose |
| Menendez. |
| |
| |
| |
| |
| |
| THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER |
| BY |
| MARK TWAIN |
| (Samuel Langhorne Clemens) |
| |
| |
| |
| |
| P R E F A C E |
| |
| MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or |
| two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were |
| schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but |
| not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of |
| three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of |
| architecture. |
| |
| The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children |
| and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say, |
| thirty or forty years ago. |
| |
| Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and |
| girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account, |
| for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what |
| they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked, |
| and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in. |
| |
| THE AUTHOR. |
| |
| HARTFORD, 1876. |
| |
| |
| |
| T O M S A W Y E R |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER I |
| |
| "TOM!" |
| |
| No answer. |
| |
| "TOM!" |
| |
| No answer. |
| |
| "What's gone with that boy, I wonder? You TOM!" |
| |
| No answer. |
| |
| The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the |
| room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or |
| never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her |
| state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not |
| service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well. |
| She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but |
| still loud enough for the furniture to hear: |
| |
| "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--" |
| |
| She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching |
| under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the |
| punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat. |
| |
| "I never did see the beat of that boy!" |
| |
| She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the |
| tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom. |
| So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and |
| shouted: |
| |
| "Y-o-u-u TOM!" |
| |
| There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to |
| seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight. |
| |
| "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in |
| there?" |
| |
| "Nothing." |
| |
| "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that |
| truck?" |
| |
| "I don't know, aunt." |
| |
| "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if |
| you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch." |
| |
| The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate-- |
| |
| "My! Look behind you, aunt!" |
| |
| The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The |
| lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and |
| disappeared over it. |
| |
| His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle |
| laugh. |
| |
| "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks |
| enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old |
| fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks, |
| as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days, |
| and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how |
| long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he |
| can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down |
| again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy, |
| and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile |
| the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for |
| us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my |
| own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash |
| him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so, |
| and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man |
| that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the |
| Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, * |
| and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him |
| work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work |
| Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more |
| than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him, |
| or I'll be the ruination of the child." |
| |
| Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home |
| barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's |
| wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in |
| time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the |
| work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already |
| through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a |
| quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways. |
| |
| While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity |
| offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and |
| very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like |
| many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she |
| was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she |
| loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low |
| cunning. Said she: |
| |
| "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?" |
| |
| "Yes'm." |
| |
| "Powerful warm, warn't it?" |
| |
| "Yes'm." |
| |
| "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?" |
| |
| A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion. |
| He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said: |
| |
| "No'm--well, not very much." |
| |
| The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said: |
| |
| "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect |
| that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing |
| that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew |
| where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move: |
| |
| "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?" |
| |
| Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of |
| circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new |
| inspiration: |
| |
| "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to |
| pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!" |
| |
| The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His |
| shirt collar was securely sewed. |
| |
| "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey |
| and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a |
| singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time." |
| |
| She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom |
| had stumbled into obedient conduct for once. |
| |
| But Sidney said: |
| |
| "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread, |
| but it's black." |
| |
| "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!" |
| |
| But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said: |
| |
| "Siddy, I'll lick you for that." |
| |
| In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into |
| the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle |
| carried white thread and the other black. He said: |
| |
| "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes |
| she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to |
| geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But |
| I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!" |
| |
| He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very |
| well though--and loathed him. |
| |
| Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles. |
| Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him |
| than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore |
| them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's |
| misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This |
| new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just |
| acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed. |
| It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble, |
| produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short |
| intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how |
| to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave |
| him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full |
| of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an |
| astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as |
| strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with |
| the boy, not the astronomer. |
| |
| The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom |
| checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger |
| than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive |
| curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy |
| was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply |
| astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth |
| roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes |
| on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of |
| ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The |
| more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his |
| nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed |
| to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but |
| only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all |
| the time. Finally Tom said: |
| |
| "I can lick you!" |
| |
| "I'd like to see you try it." |
| |
| "Well, I can do it." |
| |
| "No you can't, either." |
| |
| "Yes I can." |
| |
| "No you can't." |
| |
| "I can." |
| |
| "You can't." |
| |
| "Can!" |
| |
| "Can't!" |
| |
| An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said: |
| |
| "What's your name?" |
| |
| "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe." |
| |
| "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business." |
| |
| "Well why don't you?" |
| |
| "If you say much, I will." |
| |
| "Much--much--MUCH. There now." |
| |
| "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with |
| one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to." |
| |
| "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it." |
| |
| "Well I WILL, if you fool with me." |
| |
| "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix." |
| |
| "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!" |
| |
| "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it |
| off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs." |
| |
| "You're a liar!" |
| |
| "You're another." |
| |
| "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up." |
| |
| "Aw--take a walk!" |
| |
| "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a |
| rock off'n your head." |
| |
| "Oh, of COURSE you will." |
| |
| "Well I WILL." |
| |
| "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for? |
| Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid." |
| |
| "I AIN'T afraid." |
| |
| "You are." |
| |
| "I ain't." |
| |
| "You are." |
| |
| Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently |
| they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said: |
| |
| "Get away from here!" |
| |
| "Go away yourself!" |
| |
| "I won't." |
| |
| "I won't either." |
| |
| So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and |
| both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with |
| hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both |
| were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution, |
| and Tom said: |
| |
| "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he |
| can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too." |
| |
| "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger |
| than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too." |
| [Both brothers were imaginary.] |
| |
| "That's a lie." |
| |
| "YOUR saying so don't make it so." |
| |
| Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said: |
| |
| "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand |
| up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep." |
| |
| The new boy stepped over promptly, and said: |
| |
| "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it." |
| |
| "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out." |
| |
| "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?" |
| |
| "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it." |
| |
| The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out |
| with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys |
| were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and |
| for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and |
| clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered |
| themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and |
| through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and |
| pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he. |
| |
| The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage. |
| |
| "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on. |
| |
| At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up |
| and said: |
| |
| "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next |
| time." |
| |
| The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing, |
| snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and |
| threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out." |
| To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and |
| as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw |
| it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like |
| an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he |
| lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the |
| enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the |
| window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called |
| Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went |
| away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy. |
| |
| He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in |
| at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt; |
| and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn |
| his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in |
| its firmness. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER II |
| |
| SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and |
| fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if |
| the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in |
| every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom |
| and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond |
| the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far |
| enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting. |
| |
| Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a |
| long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and |
| a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board |
| fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a |
| burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost |
| plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant |
| whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed |
| fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at |
| the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from |
| the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but |
| now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at |
| the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there |
| waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling, |
| fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only |
| a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of |
| water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after |
| him. Tom said: |
| |
| "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some." |
| |
| Jim shook his head and said: |
| |
| "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis |
| water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars |
| Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend |
| to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'." |
| |
| "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always |
| talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't |
| ever know." |
| |
| "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n |
| me. 'Deed she would." |
| |
| "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her |
| thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but |
| talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you |
| a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!" |
| |
| Jim began to waver. |
| |
| "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw." |
| |
| "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful |
| 'fraid ole missis--" |
| |
| "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe." |
| |
| Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down |
| his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing |
| interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was |
| flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was |
| whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field |
| with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye. |
| |
| But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had |
| planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys |
| would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and |
| they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very |
| thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and |
| examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an |
| exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an |
| hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his |
| pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark |
| and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a |
| great, magnificent inspiration. |
| |
| He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in |
| sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been |
| dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his |
| heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and |
| giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned |
| ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As |
| he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned |
| far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious |
| pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and |
| considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and |
| captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself |
| standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them: |
| |
| "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he |
| drew up slowly toward the sidewalk. |
| |
| "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and |
| stiffened down his sides. |
| |
| "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow! |
| Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was |
| representing a forty-foot wheel. |
| |
| "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!" |
| The left hand began to describe circles. |
| |
| "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead |
| on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow! |
| Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now! |
| Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn |
| round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her |
| go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!" |
| (trying the gauge-cocks). |
| |
| Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben |
| stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!" |
| |
| No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then |
| he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as |
| before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the |
| apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said: |
| |
| "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?" |
| |
| Tom wheeled suddenly and said: |
| |
| "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing." |
| |
| "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of |
| course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!" |
| |
| Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said: |
| |
| "What do you call work?" |
| |
| "Why, ain't THAT work?" |
| |
| Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly: |
| |
| "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom |
| Sawyer." |
| |
| "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?" |
| |
| The brush continued to move. |
| |
| "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get |
| a chance to whitewash a fence every day?" |
| |
| That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom |
| swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the |
| effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben |
| watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more |
| absorbed. Presently he said: |
| |
| "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little." |
| |
| Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind: |
| |
| "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's |
| awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know |
| --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes, |
| she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very |
| careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two |
| thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done." |
| |
| "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd |
| let YOU, if you was me, Tom." |
| |
| "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to |
| do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't |
| let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this |
| fence and anything was to happen to it--" |
| |
| "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give |
| you the core of my apple." |
| |
| "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--" |
| |
| "I'll give you ALL of it!" |
| |
| Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his |
| heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in |
| the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by, |
| dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more |
| innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every |
| little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time |
| Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for |
| a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in |
| for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on, |
| hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being |
| a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling |
| in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles, |
| part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a |
| spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk, |
| a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six |
| fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a |
| dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of |
| orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash. |
| |
| He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company |
| --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out |
| of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village. |
| |
| Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He |
| had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely, |
| that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only |
| necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great |
| and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have |
| comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do, |
| and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And |
| this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers |
| or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or |
| climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in |
| England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles |
| on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them |
| considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service, |
| that would turn it into work and then they would resign. |
| |
| The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place |
| in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to |
| report. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER III |
| |
| TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open |
| window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom, |
| breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer |
| air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur |
| of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting |
| --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her |
| spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought |
| that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him |
| place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't |
| I go and play now, aunt?" |
| |
| "What, a'ready? How much have you done?" |
| |
| "It's all done, aunt." |
| |
| "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it." |
| |
| "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done." |
| |
| Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see |
| for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent. |
| of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed, |
| and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even |
| a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable. |
| She said: |
| |
| "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're |
| a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But |
| it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long |
| and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you." |
| |
| She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took |
| him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to |
| him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a |
| treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort. |
| And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a |
| doughnut. |
| |
| Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway |
| that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and |
| the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a |
| hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties |
| and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect, |
| and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general |
| thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at |
| peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his |
| black thread and getting him into trouble. |
| |
| Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by |
| the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the |
| reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square |
| of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for |
| conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of |
| these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These |
| two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being |
| better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence |
| and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through |
| aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and |
| hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged, |
| the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the |
| necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and |
| marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone. |
| |
| As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new |
| girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair |
| plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered |
| pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A |
| certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a |
| memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction; |
| he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor |
| little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had |
| confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest |
| boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time |
| she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is |
| done. |
| |
| He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she |
| had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present, |
| and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to |
| win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some |
| time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous |
| gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl |
| was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and |
| leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer. |
| She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom |
| heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face |
| lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment |
| before she disappeared. |
| |
| The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and |
| then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if |
| he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction. |
| Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his |
| nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side, |
| in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally |
| his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he |
| hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But |
| only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his |
| jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not |
| much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway. |
| |
| He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing |
| off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom |
| comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some |
| window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode |
| home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions. |
| |
| All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered |
| "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding |
| Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar |
| under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said: |
| |
| "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it." |
| |
| "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into |
| that sugar if I warn't watching you." |
| |
| Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his |
| immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which |
| was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped |
| and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even |
| controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would |
| not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly |
| still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and |
| there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model |
| "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold |
| himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck |
| discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to |
| himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on |
| the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried |
| out: |
| |
| "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!" |
| |
| Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But |
| when she got her tongue again, she only said: |
| |
| "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some |
| other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough." |
| |
| Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something |
| kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a |
| confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that. |
| So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart. |
| Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart |
| his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the |
| consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice |
| of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then, |
| through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured |
| himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching |
| one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and |
| die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured |
| himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and |
| his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how |
| her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back |
| her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie |
| there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose |
| griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos |
| of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to |
| choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he |
| winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a |
| luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear |
| to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it; |
| it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin |
| Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an |
| age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in |
| clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in |
| at the other. |
| |
| He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought |
| desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the |
| river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and |
| contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while, |
| that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without |
| undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought |
| of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily |
| increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she |
| knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms |
| around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all |
| the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable |
| suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it |
| up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he |
| rose up sighing and departed in the darkness. |
| |
| About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street |
| to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell |
| upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the |
| curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He |
| climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till |
| he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion; |
| then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon |
| his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor |
| wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no |
| shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the |
| death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him |
| when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked |
| out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon |
| his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright |
| young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down? |
| |
| The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the |
| holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains! |
| |
| The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz |
| as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound |
| as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the |
| fence and shot away in the gloom. |
| |
| Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his |
| drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he |
| had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought |
| better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye. |
| |
| Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made |
| mental note of the omission. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER IV |
| |
| THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful |
| village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family |
| worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid |
| courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of |
| originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter |
| of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai. |
| |
| Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get |
| his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his |
| energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the |
| Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter. |
| At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson, |
| but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human |
| thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary |
| took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through |
| the fog: |
| |
| "Blessed are the--a--a--" |
| |
| "Poor"-- |
| |
| "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--" |
| |
| "In spirit--" |
| |
| "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--" |
| |
| "THEIRS--" |
| |
| "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom |
| of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--" |
| |
| "Sh--" |
| |
| "For they--a--" |
| |
| "S, H, A--" |
| |
| "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!" |
| |
| "SHALL!" |
| |
| "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a-- |
| blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for |
| they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you |
| want to be so mean for?" |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't |
| do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom, |
| you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice. |
| There, now, that's a good boy." |
| |
| "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is." |
| |
| "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice." |
| |
| "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again." |
| |
| And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of |
| curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he |
| accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow" |
| knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that |
| swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would |
| not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was |
| inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got |
| the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its |
| injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom |
| contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin |
| on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school. |
| |
| Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went |
| outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he |
| dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves; |
| poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the |
| kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the |
| door. But Mary removed the towel and said: |
| |
| "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt |
| you." |
| |
| Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time |
| he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big |
| breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes |
| shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony |
| of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from |
| the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped |
| short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line |
| there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in |
| front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she |
| was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of |
| color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls |
| wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately |
| smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his |
| hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and |
| his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of |
| his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they |
| were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the |
| size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed |
| himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his |
| vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned |
| him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and |
| uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there |
| was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He |
| hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she |
| coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them |
| out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do |
| everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively: |
| |
| "Please, Tom--that's a good boy." |
| |
| So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three |
| children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his |
| whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it. |
| |
| Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church |
| service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon |
| voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons. |
| The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three |
| hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort |
| of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom |
| dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade: |
| |
| "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?" |
| |
| "Yes." |
| |
| "What'll you take for her?" |
| |
| "What'll you give?" |
| |
| "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook." |
| |
| "Less see 'em." |
| |
| Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands. |
| Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and |
| some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other |
| boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or |
| fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of |
| clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a |
| quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave, |
| elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a |
| boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy |
| turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear |
| him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole |
| class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they |
| came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses |
| perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried |
| through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a |
| passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of |
| the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be |
| exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow |
| tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty |
| cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would |
| have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even |
| for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it |
| was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had |
| won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without |
| stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and |
| he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous |
| misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the |
| superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out |
| and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their |
| tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and |
| so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy |
| circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for |
| that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh |
| ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's |
| mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but |
| unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory |
| and the eclat that came with it. |
| |
| In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with |
| a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its |
| leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent |
| makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as |
| necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer |
| who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert |
| --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of |
| music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a |
| slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair; |
| he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his |
| ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his |
| mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning |
| of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped |
| on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note, |
| and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the |
| fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and |
| laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes |
| pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest |
| of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred |
| things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly |
| matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had |
| acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He |
| began after this fashion: |
| |
| "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty |
| as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There |
| --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see |
| one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she |
| thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making |
| a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you |
| how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces |
| assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And |
| so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the |
| oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar |
| to us all. |
| |
| The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights |
| and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings |
| and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases |
| of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every |
| sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and |
| the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent |
| gratitude. |
| |
| A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which |
| was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher, |
| accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged |
| gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless |
| the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless |
| and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could |
| not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But |
| when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in |
| a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might |
| --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art |
| that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His |
| exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this |
| angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under |
| the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now. |
| |
| The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr. |
| Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The |
| middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one |
| than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these |
| children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material |
| he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half |
| afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so |
| he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon |
| the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe |
| which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence |
| and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher, |
| brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to |
| be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would |
| have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings: |
| |
| "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to |
| shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you |
| wish you was Jeff?" |
| |
| Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official |
| bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments, |
| discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a |
| target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his |
| arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that |
| insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off" |
| --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting |
| pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones |
| lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small |
| scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to |
| discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up |
| at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had |
| to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation). |
| The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys |
| "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads |
| and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and |
| beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself |
| in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too. |
| |
| There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy |
| complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a |
| prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough |
| --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given |
| worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind. |
| |
| And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward |
| with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and |
| demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters |
| was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten |
| years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified |
| checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated |
| to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was |
| announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the |
| decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero |
| up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to |
| gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but |
| those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too |
| late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by |
| trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling |
| whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes |
| of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass. |
| |
| The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the |
| superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked |
| somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him |
| that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light, |
| perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two |
| thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would |
| strain his capacity, without a doubt. |
| |
| Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in |
| her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain |
| troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched; |
| a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was |
| jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom |
| most of all (she thought). |
| |
| Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath |
| would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful |
| greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would |
| have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The |
| Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and |
| asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out: |
| |
| "Tom." |
| |
| "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--" |
| |
| "Thomas." |
| |
| "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very |
| well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't |
| you?" |
| |
| "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say |
| sir. You mustn't forget your manners." |
| |
| "Thomas Sawyer--sir." |
| |
| "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow. |
| Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you |
| never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for |
| knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what |
| makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man |
| yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all |
| owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all |
| owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to |
| the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and |
| gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have |
| it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is |
| what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those |
| two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind |
| telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know |
| you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no |
| doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us |
| the names of the first two that were appointed?" |
| |
| Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed, |
| now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to |
| himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest |
| question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up |
| and say: |
| |
| "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid." |
| |
| Tom still hung fire. |
| |
| "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first |
| two disciples were--" |
| |
| "DAVID AND GOLIAH!" |
| |
| Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER V |
| |
| ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to |
| ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon. |
| The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and |
| occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt |
| Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed |
| next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open |
| window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd |
| filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better |
| days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other |
| unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair, |
| smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her |
| hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and |
| much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg |
| could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer |
| Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the |
| village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young |
| heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they |
| had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of |
| oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet; |
| and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful |
| care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his |
| mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all |
| hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them" |
| so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as |
| usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked |
| upon boys who had as snobs. |
| |
| The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more, |
| to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the |
| church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the |
| choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all |
| through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred, |
| but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago, |
| and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in |
| some foreign country. |
| |
| The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in |
| a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country. |
| His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached |
| a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost |
| word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board: |
| |
| Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease, |
| |
| Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas? |
| |
| He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was |
| always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies |
| would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps, |
| and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words |
| cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal |
| earth." |
| |
| After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into |
| a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and |
| things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of |
| doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities, |
| away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is |
| to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it. |
| |
| And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went |
| into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the |
| church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself; |
| for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United |
| States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the |
| President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed |
| by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of |
| European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light |
| and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear |
| withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with |
| a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace |
| and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a |
| grateful harvest of good. Amen. |
| |
| There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat |
| down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer, |
| he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all |
| through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously |
| --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the |
| clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new |
| matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature |
| resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the |
| midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of |
| him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together, |
| embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that |
| it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread |
| of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs |
| and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going |
| through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly |
| safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for |
| it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed |
| if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the |
| closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the |
| instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt |
| detected the act and made him let it go. |
| |
| The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through |
| an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod |
| --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone |
| and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be |
| hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after |
| church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew |
| anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really |
| interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving |
| picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the |
| millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a |
| little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of |
| the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the |
| conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking |
| nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he |
| wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion. |
| |
| Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed. |
| Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was |
| a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it. |
| It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to |
| take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went |
| floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger |
| went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless |
| legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was |
| safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found |
| relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle |
| dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and |
| the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle; |
| the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked |
| around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again; |
| grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a |
| gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another; |
| began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle |
| between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last, |
| and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by |
| little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There |
| was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a |
| couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring |
| spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind |
| fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked |
| foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart, |
| too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a |
| wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle, |
| lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even |
| closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his |
| ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried |
| to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant |
| around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that; |
| yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then |
| there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the |
| aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in |
| front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the |
| doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his |
| progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit |
| with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer |
| sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it |
| out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and |
| died in the distance. |
| |
| By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with |
| suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The |
| discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all |
| possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest |
| sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of |
| unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor |
| parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to |
| the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction |
| pronounced. |
| |
| Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there |
| was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of |
| variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the |
| dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright |
| in him to carry it off. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER VI |
| |
| MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found |
| him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He |
| generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening |
| holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much |
| more odious. |
| |
| Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was |
| sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague |
| possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he |
| investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky |
| symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But |
| they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected |
| further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth |
| was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a |
| "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came |
| into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that |
| would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the |
| present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and |
| then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that |
| laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him |
| lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the |
| sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the |
| necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it, |
| so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit. |
| |
| But Sid slept on unconscious. |
| |
| Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe. |
| |
| No result from Sid. |
| |
| Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and |
| then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans. |
| |
| Sid snored on. |
| |
| Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course |
| worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then |
| brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at |
| Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said: |
| |
| "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter, |
| Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously. |
| |
| Tom moaned out: |
| |
| "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me." |
| |
| "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie." |
| |
| "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody." |
| |
| "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this |
| way?" |
| |
| "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me." |
| |
| "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my |
| flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?" |
| |
| "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done |
| to me. When I'm gone--" |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--" |
| |
| "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you |
| give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's |
| come to town, and tell her--" |
| |
| But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in |
| reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his |
| groans had gathered quite a genuine tone. |
| |
| Sid flew down-stairs and said: |
| |
| "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!" |
| |
| "Dying!" |
| |
| "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!" |
| |
| "Rubbage! I don't believe it!" |
| |
| But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels. |
| And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached |
| the bedside she gasped out: |
| |
| "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?" |
| |
| "Oh, auntie, I'm--" |
| |
| "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?" |
| |
| "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!" |
| |
| The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a |
| little, then did both together. This restored her and she said: |
| |
| "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and |
| climb out of this." |
| |
| The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a |
| little foolish, and he said: |
| |
| "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my |
| tooth at all." |
| |
| "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?" |
| |
| "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful." |
| |
| "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth. |
| Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that. |
| Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen." |
| |
| Tom said: |
| |
| "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish |
| I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay |
| home from school." |
| |
| "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought |
| you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love |
| you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart |
| with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were |
| ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth |
| with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the |
| chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The |
| tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now. |
| |
| But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school |
| after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in |
| his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and |
| admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the |
| exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of |
| fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly |
| without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and |
| he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to |
| spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he |
| wandered away a dismantled hero. |
| |
| Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry |
| Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and |
| dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless |
| and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and |
| delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like |
| him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied |
| Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders |
| not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance. |
| Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown |
| men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat |
| was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat, |
| when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons |
| far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat |
| of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs |
| dragged in the dirt when not rolled up. |
| |
| Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps |
| in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to |
| school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could |
| go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it |
| suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he |
| pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring |
| and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor |
| put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything |
| that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every |
| harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg. |
| |
| Tom hailed the romantic outcast: |
| |
| "Hello, Huckleberry!" |
| |
| "Hello yourself, and see how you like it." |
| |
| "What's that you got?" |
| |
| "Dead cat." |
| |
| "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?" |
| |
| "Bought him off'n a boy." |
| |
| "What did you give?" |
| |
| "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house." |
| |
| "Where'd you get the blue ticket?" |
| |
| "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick." |
| |
| "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?" |
| |
| "Good for? Cure warts with." |
| |
| "No! Is that so? I know something that's better." |
| |
| "I bet you don't. What is it?" |
| |
| "Why, spunk-water." |
| |
| "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water." |
| |
| "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?" |
| |
| "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did." |
| |
| "Who told you so!" |
| |
| "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny |
| told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and |
| the nigger told me. There now!" |
| |
| "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I |
| don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now |
| you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck." |
| |
| "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the |
| rain-water was." |
| |
| "In the daytime?" |
| |
| "Certainly." |
| |
| "With his face to the stump?" |
| |
| "Yes. Least I reckon so." |
| |
| "Did he say anything?" |
| |
| "I don't reckon he did. I don't know." |
| |
| "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame |
| fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go |
| all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a |
| spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the |
| stump and jam your hand in and say: |
| |
| 'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts, |
| Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,' |
| |
| and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then |
| turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody. |
| Because if you speak the charm's busted." |
| |
| "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner |
| done." |
| |
| "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this |
| town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work |
| spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way, |
| Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many |
| warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean." |
| |
| "Yes, bean's good. I've done that." |
| |
| "Have you? What's your way?" |
| |
| "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some |
| blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and |
| dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of |
| the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece |
| that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to |
| fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the |
| wart, and pretty soon off she comes." |
| |
| "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you |
| say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better. |
| That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and |
| most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?" |
| |
| "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about |
| midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's |
| midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see |
| 'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk; |
| and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em |
| and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm |
| done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart." |
| |
| "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?" |
| |
| "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me." |
| |
| "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch." |
| |
| "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own |
| self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he |
| took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that |
| very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke |
| his arm." |
| |
| "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?" |
| |
| "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you |
| right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz |
| when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards." |
| |
| "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?" |
| |
| "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night." |
| |
| "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?" |
| |
| "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and |
| THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't |
| reckon." |
| |
| "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?" |
| |
| "Of course--if you ain't afeard." |
| |
| "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?" |
| |
| "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me |
| a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says |
| 'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't |
| you tell." |
| |
| "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me, |
| but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?" |
| |
| "Nothing but a tick." |
| |
| "Where'd you get him?" |
| |
| "Out in the woods." |
| |
| "What'll you take for him?" |
| |
| "I don't know. I don't want to sell him." |
| |
| "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway." |
| |
| "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm |
| satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me." |
| |
| "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I |
| wanted to." |
| |
| "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a |
| pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year." |
| |
| "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him." |
| |
| "Less see it." |
| |
| Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry |
| viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said: |
| |
| "Is it genuwyne?" |
| |
| Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy. |
| |
| "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade." |
| |
| Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been |
| the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier |
| than before. |
| |
| When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in |
| briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed. |
| He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with |
| business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great |
| splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study. |
| The interruption roused him. |
| |
| "Thomas Sawyer!" |
| |
| Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble. |
| |
| "Sir!" |
| |
| "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?" |
| |
| Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of |
| yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric |
| sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the |
| girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said: |
| |
| "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!" |
| |
| The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of |
| study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his |
| mind. The master said: |
| |
| "You--you did what?" |
| |
| "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn." |
| |
| There was no mistaking the words. |
| |
| "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever |
| listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your |
| jacket." |
| |
| The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of |
| switches notably diminished. Then the order followed: |
| |
| "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you." |
| |
| The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but |
| in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of |
| his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good |
| fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl |
| hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks |
| and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon |
| the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book. |
| |
| By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur |
| rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal |
| furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and |
| gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she |
| cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it |
| away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less |
| animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it |
| remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The |
| girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw |
| something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time |
| the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to |
| manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on, |
| apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to |
| see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she |
| gave in and hesitatingly whispered: |
| |
| "Let me see it." |
| |
| Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable |
| ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the |
| girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot |
| everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then |
| whispered: |
| |
| "It's nice--make a man." |
| |
| The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick. |
| He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not |
| hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered: |
| |
| "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along." |
| |
| Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and |
| armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said: |
| |
| "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw." |
| |
| "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you." |
| |
| "Oh, will you? When?" |
| |
| "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?" |
| |
| "I'll stay if you will." |
| |
| "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?" |
| |
| "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer." |
| |
| "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me |
| Tom, will you?" |
| |
| "Yes." |
| |
| Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from |
| the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom |
| said: |
| |
| "Oh, it ain't anything." |
| |
| "Yes it is." |
| |
| "No it ain't. You don't want to see." |
| |
| "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me." |
| |
| "You'll tell." |
| |
| "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't." |
| |
| "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?" |
| |
| "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me." |
| |
| "Oh, YOU don't want to see!" |
| |
| "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand |
| upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in |
| earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were |
| revealed: "I LOVE YOU." |
| |
| "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened |
| and looked pleased, nevertheless. |
| |
| Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his |
| ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the |
| house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles |
| from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few |
| awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a |
| word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant. |
| |
| As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the |
| turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the |
| reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and |
| turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into |
| continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and |
| got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought |
| up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with |
| ostentation for months. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER VII |
| |
| THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his |
| ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It |
| seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was |
| utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of |
| sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying |
| scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees. |
| Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green |
| sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of |
| distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other |
| living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's |
| heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to |
| pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face |
| lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know |
| it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the |
| tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed |
| with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it |
| was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned |
| him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction. |
| |
| Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and |
| now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an |
| instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn |
| friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a |
| pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner. |
| The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were |
| interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of |
| the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the |
| middle of it from top to bottom. |
| |
| "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and |
| I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side, |
| you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over." |
| |
| "All right, go ahead; start him up." |
| |
| The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe |
| harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This |
| change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with |
| absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong, |
| the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to |
| all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The |
| tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as |
| anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would |
| have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be |
| twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep |
| possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was |
| too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was |
| angry in a moment. Said he: |
| |
| "Tom, you let him alone." |
| |
| "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe." |
| |
| "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone." |
| |
| "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much." |
| |
| "Let him alone, I tell you." |
| |
| "I won't!" |
| |
| "You shall--he's on my side of the line." |
| |
| "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?" |
| |
| "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you |
| sha'n't touch him." |
| |
| "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I |
| blame please with him, or die!" |
| |
| A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on |
| Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from |
| the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too |
| absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile |
| before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over |
| them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he |
| contributed his bit of variety to it. |
| |
| When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and |
| whispered in her ear: |
| |
| "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to |
| the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the |
| lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same |
| way." |
| |
| So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with |
| another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and |
| when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they |
| sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil |
| and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising |
| house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking. |
| Tom was swimming in bliss. He said: |
| |
| "Do you love rats?" |
| |
| "No! I hate them!" |
| |
| "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your |
| head with a string." |
| |
| "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum." |
| |
| "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now." |
| |
| "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give |
| it back to me." |
| |
| That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their |
| legs against the bench in excess of contentment. |
| |
| "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom. |
| |
| "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good." |
| |
| "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't |
| shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time. |
| I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up." |
| |
| "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up." |
| |
| "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day, |
| Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?" |
| |
| "What's that?" |
| |
| "Why, engaged to be married." |
| |
| "No." |
| |
| "Would you like to?" |
| |
| "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?" |
| |
| "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't |
| ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's |
| all. Anybody can do it." |
| |
| "Kiss? What do you kiss for?" |
| |
| "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that." |
| |
| "Everybody?" |
| |
| "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember |
| what I wrote on the slate?" |
| |
| "Ye--yes." |
| |
| "What was it?" |
| |
| "I sha'n't tell you." |
| |
| "Shall I tell YOU?" |
| |
| "Ye--yes--but some other time." |
| |
| "No, now." |
| |
| "No, not now--to-morrow." |
| |
| "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so |
| easy." |
| |
| Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm |
| about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth |
| close to her ear. And then he added: |
| |
| "Now you whisper it to me--just the same." |
| |
| She resisted, for a while, and then said: |
| |
| "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you |
| mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?" |
| |
| "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky." |
| |
| He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath |
| stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!" |
| |
| Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches, |
| with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her |
| little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and |
| pleaded: |
| |
| "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid |
| of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her |
| apron and the hands. |
| |
| By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing |
| with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and |
| said: |
| |
| "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't |
| ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but |
| me, ever never and forever. Will you?" |
| |
| "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry |
| anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either." |
| |
| "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school |
| or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't |
| anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because |
| that's the way you do when you're engaged." |
| |
| "It's so nice. I never heard of it before." |
| |
| "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--" |
| |
| The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused. |
| |
| "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!" |
| |
| The child began to cry. Tom said: |
| |
| "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more." |
| |
| "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do." |
| |
| Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and |
| turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with |
| soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was |
| up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and |
| uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping |
| she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began |
| to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle |
| with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and |
| entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with |
| her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a |
| moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly: |
| |
| "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you." |
| |
| No reply--but sobs. |
| |
| "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?" |
| |
| More sobs. |
| |
| Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an |
| andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said: |
| |
| "Please, Becky, won't you take it?" |
| |
| She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over |
| the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently |
| Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she |
| flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called: |
| |
| "Tom! Come back, Tom!" |
| |
| She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions |
| but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid |
| herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she |
| had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross |
| of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers |
| about her to exchange sorrows with. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER VIII |
| |
| TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of |
| the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He |
| crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing |
| juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour |
| later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of |
| Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off |
| in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless |
| way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading |
| oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had |
| even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was |
| broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a |
| woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense |
| of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in |
| melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He |
| sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands, |
| meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and |
| he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be |
| very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and |
| ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the |
| grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve |
| about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he |
| could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl. |
| What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been |
| treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe |
| when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY! |
| |
| But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one |
| constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift |
| insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned |
| his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever |
| so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came |
| back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown |
| recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and |
| jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves |
| upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the |
| romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all |
| war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians, |
| and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the |
| trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come |
| back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and |
| prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a |
| bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions |
| with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than |
| this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain |
| before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would |
| fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go |
| plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the |
| Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at |
| the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village |
| and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet |
| doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt |
| bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his |
| slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull |
| and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings, |
| "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!" |
| |
| Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from |
| home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore |
| he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources |
| together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under |
| one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded |
| hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively: |
| |
| "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!" |
| |
| Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it |
| up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides |
| were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless! |
| He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said: |
| |
| "Well, that beats anything!" |
| |
| Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The |
| truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and |
| all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a |
| marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a |
| fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just |
| used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had |
| gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they |
| had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably |
| failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations. |
| He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its |
| failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several |
| times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places |
| afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided |
| that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he |
| would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he |
| found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it. |
| He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and |
| called-- |
| |
| "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug, |
| doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!" |
| |
| The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a |
| second and then darted under again in a fright. |
| |
| "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it." |
| |
| He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he |
| gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have |
| the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a |
| patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to |
| his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been |
| standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble |
| from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying: |
| |
| "Brother, go find your brother!" |
| |
| He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must |
| have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last |
| repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each |
| other. |
| |
| Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green |
| aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a |
| suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log, |
| disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in |
| a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with |
| fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an |
| answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way |
| and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company: |
| |
| "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow." |
| |
| Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom. |
| Tom called: |
| |
| "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?" |
| |
| "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--" |
| |
| "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked |
| "by the book," from memory. |
| |
| "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?" |
| |
| "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know." |
| |
| "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute |
| with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!" |
| |
| They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground, |
| struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful |
| combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said: |
| |
| "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!" |
| |
| So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and |
| by Tom shouted: |
| |
| "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?" |
| |
| "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of |
| it." |
| |
| "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in |
| the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor |
| Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the |
| back." |
| |
| There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received |
| the whack and fell. |
| |
| "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair." |
| |
| "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book." |
| |
| "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all." |
| |
| "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and |
| lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and |
| you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me." |
| |
| This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then |
| Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to |
| bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe, |
| representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth, |
| gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow |
| falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he |
| shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a |
| nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse. |
| |
| The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off |
| grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern |
| civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss. |
| They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than |
| President of the United States forever. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER IX |
| |
| AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual. |
| They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and |
| waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be |
| nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He |
| would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was |
| afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark. |
| Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little, |
| scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking |
| of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to |
| crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were |
| abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And |
| now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could |
| locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at |
| the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were |
| numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was |
| answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an |
| agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity |
| begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven, |
| but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his |
| half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a |
| neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the |
| crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed |
| brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and |
| out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all |
| fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped |
| to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn |
| was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the |
| gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall |
| grass of the graveyard. |
| |
| It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a |
| hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board |
| fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of |
| the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the |
| whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a |
| tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over |
| the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory |
| of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer |
| have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light. |
| |
| A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the |
| spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked |
| little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the |
| pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the |
| sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the |
| protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet |
| of the grave. |
| |
| Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting |
| of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness. |
| Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said |
| in a whisper: |
| |
| "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?" |
| |
| Huckleberry whispered: |
| |
| "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?" |
| |
| "I bet it is." |
| |
| There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter |
| inwardly. Then Tom whispered: |
| |
| "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?" |
| |
| "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does." |
| |
| Tom, after a pause: |
| |
| "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm. |
| Everybody calls him Hoss." |
| |
| "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead |
| people, Tom." |
| |
| This was a damper, and conversation died again. |
| |
| Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said: |
| |
| "Sh!" |
| |
| "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts. |
| |
| "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?" |
| |
| "I--" |
| |
| "There! Now you hear it." |
| |
| "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?" |
| |
| "I dono. Think they'll see us?" |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't |
| come." |
| |
| "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't |
| doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us |
| at all." |
| |
| "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver." |
| |
| "Listen!" |
| |
| The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled |
| sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard. |
| |
| "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?" |
| |
| "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful." |
| |
| Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an |
| old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable |
| little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a |
| shudder: |
| |
| "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners! |
| Can you pray?" |
| |
| "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now |
| I lay me down to sleep, I--'" |
| |
| "Sh!" |
| |
| "What is it, Huck?" |
| |
| "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's |
| voice." |
| |
| "No--'tain't so, is it?" |
| |
| "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to |
| notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!" |
| |
| "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here |
| they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot! |
| They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them |
| voices; it's Injun Joe." |
| |
| "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a |
| dern sight. What kin they be up to?" |
| |
| The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the |
| grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place. |
| |
| "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the |
| lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson. |
| |
| Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a |
| couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open |
| the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came |
| and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so |
| close the boys could have touched him. |
| |
| "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any |
| moment." |
| |
| They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was |
| no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight |
| of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck |
| upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or |
| two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid |
| with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the |
| ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid |
| face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered |
| with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a |
| large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then |
| said: |
| |
| "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with |
| another five, or here she stays." |
| |
| "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe. |
| |
| "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your |
| pay in advance, and I've paid you." |
| |
| "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the |
| doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from |
| your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to |
| eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get |
| even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for |
| a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for |
| nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!" |
| |
| He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this |
| time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the |
| ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed: |
| |
| "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had |
| grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and |
| main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels. |
| Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched |
| up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and |
| round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the |
| doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams' |
| grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant |
| the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the |
| young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him |
| with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the |
| dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in |
| the dark. |
| |
| Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over |
| the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately, |
| gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered: |
| |
| "THAT score is settled--damn you." |
| |
| Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in |
| Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three |
| --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His |
| hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it |
| fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and |
| gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's. |
| |
| "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said. |
| |
| "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving. |
| |
| "What did you do it for?" |
| |
| "I! I never done it!" |
| |
| "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash." |
| |
| Potter trembled and grew white. |
| |
| "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's |
| in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle; |
| can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old |
| feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I |
| never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him |
| so young and promising." |
| |
| "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard |
| and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering |
| like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched |
| you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til |
| now." |
| |
| "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if |
| I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I |
| reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but |
| never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you |
| won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and |
| stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you, |
| Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid |
| murderer, and clasped his appealing hands. |
| |
| "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I |
| won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say." |
| |
| "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I |
| live." And Potter began to cry. |
| |
| "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering. |
| You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any |
| tracks behind you." |
| |
| Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The |
| half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered: |
| |
| "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he |
| had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so |
| far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself |
| --chicken-heart!" |
| |
| Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the |
| lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the |
| moon's. The stillness was complete again, too. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER X |
| |
| THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with |
| horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time, |
| apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump |
| that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them |
| catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay |
| near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give |
| wings to their feet. |
| |
| "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!" |
| whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much |
| longer." |
| |
| Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed |
| their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it. |
| They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst |
| through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering |
| shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered: |
| |
| "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?" |
| |
| "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it." |
| |
| "Do you though?" |
| |
| "Why, I KNOW it, Tom." |
| |
| Tom thought a while, then he said: |
| |
| "Who'll tell? We?" |
| |
| "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe |
| DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as |
| we're a laying here." |
| |
| "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck." |
| |
| "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's |
| generally drunk enough." |
| |
| Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered: |
| |
| "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?" |
| |
| "What's the reason he don't know it?" |
| |
| "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon |
| he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?" |
| |
| "By hokey, that's so, Tom!" |
| |
| "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!" |
| |
| "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and |
| besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt |
| him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so, |
| his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a |
| man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono." |
| |
| After another reflective silence, Tom said: |
| |
| "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?" |
| |
| "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't |
| make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to |
| squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less |
| take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep |
| mum." |
| |
| "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear |
| that we--" |
| |
| "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little |
| rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you |
| anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing |
| 'bout a big thing like this. And blood." |
| |
| Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and |
| awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping |
| with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight, |
| took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on |
| his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow |
| down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up |
| the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.] |
| |
| "Huck Finn and |
| Tom Sawyer swears |
| they will keep mum |
| about This and They |
| wish They may Drop |
| down dead in Their |
| Tracks if They ever |
| Tell and Rot." |
| |
| Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing, |
| and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel |
| and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said: |
| |
| "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on |
| it." |
| |
| "What's verdigrease?" |
| |
| "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once |
| --you'll see." |
| |
| So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy |
| pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In |
| time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the |
| ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to |
| make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle |
| close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and |
| the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and |
| the key thrown away. |
| |
| A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the |
| ruined building, now, but they did not notice it. |
| |
| "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling |
| --ALWAYS?" |
| |
| "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got |
| to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?" |
| |
| "Yes, I reckon that's so." |
| |
| They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up |
| a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys |
| clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright. |
| |
| "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry. |
| |
| "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!" |
| |
| "No, YOU, Tom!" |
| |
| "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!" |
| |
| "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!" |
| |
| "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull |
| Harbison." * |
| |
| [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of |
| him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull |
| Harbison."] |
| |
| "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a |
| bet anything it was a STRAY dog." |
| |
| The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more. |
| |
| "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!" |
| |
| Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His |
| whisper was hardly audible when he said: |
| |
| "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!" |
| |
| "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?" |
| |
| "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together." |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout |
| where I'LL go to. I been so wicked." |
| |
| "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a |
| feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried |
| --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay |
| I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little. |
| |
| "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom |
| Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy, |
| lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance." |
| |
| Tom choked off and whispered: |
| |
| "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!" |
| |
| Hucky looked, with joy in his heart. |
| |
| "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?" |
| |
| "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully, |
| you know. NOW who can he mean?" |
| |
| The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears. |
| |
| "Sh! What's that?" he whispered. |
| |
| "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom." |
| |
| "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?" |
| |
| "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to |
| sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he |
| just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever |
| coming back to this town any more." |
| |
| The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more. |
| |
| "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?" |
| |
| "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!" |
| |
| Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the |
| boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to |
| their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily |
| down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps |
| of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap. |
| The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight. |
| It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes |
| too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed |
| out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little |
| distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on |
| the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing |
| within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with |
| his nose pointing heavenward. |
| |
| "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath. |
| |
| "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's |
| house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill |
| come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and |
| there ain't anybody dead there yet." |
| |
| "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall |
| in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?" |
| |
| "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too." |
| |
| "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff |
| Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about |
| these kind of things, Huck." |
| |
| Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom |
| window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution, |
| and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his |
| escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and |
| had been so for an hour. |
| |
| When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the |
| light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not |
| been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled |
| him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs, |
| feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had |
| finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were |
| averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a |
| chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it |
| was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into |
| silence and let his heart sink down to the depths. |
| |
| After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in |
| the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt |
| wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so; |
| and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray |
| hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any |
| more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was |
| sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised |
| to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling |
| that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a |
| feeble confidence. |
| |
| He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid; |
| and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was |
| unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging, |
| along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air |
| of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to |
| trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his |
| desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony |
| stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go. |
| His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time |
| he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with |
| a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal |
| sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob! |
| |
| This final feather broke the camel's back. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XI |
| |
| CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified |
| with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph; |
| the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to |
| house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the |
| schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have |
| thought strangely of him if he had not. |
| |
| A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been |
| recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran. |
| And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing |
| himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and |
| that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances, |
| especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also |
| said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public |
| are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a |
| verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down |
| all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that |
| he would be captured before night. |
| |
| All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak |
| vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a |
| thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful, |
| unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place, |
| he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal |
| spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody |
| pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both |
| looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything |
| in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the |
| grisly spectacle before them. |
| |
| "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to |
| grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This |
| was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His |
| hand is here." |
| |
| Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid |
| face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle, |
| and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!" |
| |
| "Who? Who?" from twenty voices. |
| |
| "Muff Potter!" |
| |
| "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!" |
| |
| People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't |
| trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed. |
| |
| "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a |
| quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company." |
| |
| The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through, |
| ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was |
| haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood |
| before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face |
| in his hands and burst into tears. |
| |
| "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never |
| done it." |
| |
| "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice. |
| |
| This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked |
| around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe, |
| and exclaimed: |
| |
| "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--" |
| |
| "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff. |
| |
| Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to |
| the ground. Then he said: |
| |
| "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered; |
| then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell |
| 'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more." |
| |
| Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the |
| stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every |
| moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head, |
| and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had |
| finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to |
| break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and |
| vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and |
| it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that. |
| |
| "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody |
| said. |
| |
| "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to |
| run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell |
| to sobbing again. |
| |
| Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes |
| afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the |
| lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe |
| had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most |
| balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could |
| not take their fascinated eyes from his face. |
| |
| They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should |
| offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master. |
| |
| Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a |
| wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd |
| that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy |
| circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were |
| disappointed, for more than one villager remarked: |
| |
| "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it." |
| |
| Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as |
| much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said: |
| |
| "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me |
| awake half the time." |
| |
| Tom blanched and dropped his eyes. |
| |
| "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your |
| mind, Tom?" |
| |
| "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he |
| spilled his coffee. |
| |
| "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's |
| blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And |
| you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it |
| you'll tell?" |
| |
| Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might |
| have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's |
| face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said: |
| |
| "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night |
| myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it." |
| |
| Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed |
| satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could, |
| and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his |
| jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and |
| frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow |
| listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage |
| back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and |
| the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to |
| make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself. |
| |
| It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding |
| inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his |
| mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries, |
| though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises; |
| he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was |
| strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a |
| marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he |
| could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out |
| of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience. |
| |
| Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his |
| opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such |
| small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The |
| jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge |
| of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was |
| seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's |
| conscience. |
| |
| The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and |
| ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his |
| character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead |
| in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of |
| his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the |
| grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not |
| to try the case in the courts at present. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XII |
| |
| ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret |
| troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest |
| itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had |
| struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the |
| wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's |
| house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she |
| should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an |
| interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there |
| was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat; |
| there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to |
| try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are |
| infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of |
| producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in |
| these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a |
| fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing, |
| but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the |
| "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance |
| they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they |
| contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up, |
| and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and |
| what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to |
| wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her |
| health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they |
| had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest |
| as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered |
| together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed |
| with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with |
| "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an |
| angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering |
| neighbors. |
| |
| The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a |
| windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him |
| up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then |
| she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to; |
| then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets |
| till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came |
| through his pores"--as Tom said. |
| |
| Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy |
| and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths, |
| and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to |
| assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She |
| calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every |
| day with quack cure-alls. |
| |
| Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase |
| filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must |
| be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first |
| time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with |
| gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water |
| treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She |
| gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the |
| result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again; |
| for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a |
| wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him. |
| |
| Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be |
| romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have |
| too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he |
| thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of |
| professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he |
| became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself |
| and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no |
| misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the |
| bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish, |
| but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a |
| crack in the sitting-room floor with it. |
| |
| One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow |
| cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging |
| for a taste. Tom said: |
| |
| "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter." |
| |
| But Peter signified that he did want it. |
| |
| "You better make sure." |
| |
| Peter was sure. |
| |
| "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't |
| anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't |
| blame anybody but your own self." |
| |
| Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the |
| Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then |
| delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging |
| against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc. |
| Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of |
| enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming |
| his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again |
| spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time |
| to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty |
| hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the |
| flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment, |
| peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter. |
| |
| "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?" |
| |
| "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy. |
| |
| "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?" |
| |
| "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having |
| a good time." |
| |
| "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom |
| apprehensive. |
| |
| "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do." |
| |
| "You DO?" |
| |
| "Yes'm." |
| |
| The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized |
| by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale |
| teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it |
| up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the |
| usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble. |
| |
| "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?" |
| |
| "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt." |
| |
| "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?" |
| |
| "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a |
| roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a |
| human!" |
| |
| Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing |
| in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy, |
| too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little, |
| and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently: |
| |
| "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good." |
| |
| Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping |
| through his gravity. |
| |
| "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter. |
| It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--" |
| |
| "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you |
| try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take |
| any more medicine." |
| |
| Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange |
| thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late, |
| he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his |
| comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to |
| be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road. |
| Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed |
| a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom |
| accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about |
| Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and |
| watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the |
| owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks |
| ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered |
| the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock |
| passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next |
| instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing, |
| chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing |
| handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could |
| conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if |
| Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it |
| all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that |
| he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came |
| war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the |
| schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every |
| direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost |
| upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard |
| her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing |
| off!" |
| |
| Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed |
| and crestfallen. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XIII |
| |
| TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a |
| forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found |
| out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had |
| tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since |
| nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them |
| blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the |
| friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he |
| would lead a life of crime. There was no choice. |
| |
| By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to |
| "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he |
| should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very |
| hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold |
| world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick |
| and fast. |
| |
| Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper |
| --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart. |
| Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping |
| his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a |
| resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by |
| roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by |
| hoping that Joe would not forget him. |
| |
| But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been |
| going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His |
| mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never |
| tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him |
| and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him |
| to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having |
| driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die. |
| |
| As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to |
| stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death |
| relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans. |
| Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and |
| dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to |
| Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a |
| life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate. |
| |
| Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi |
| River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded |
| island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as |
| a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further |
| shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's |
| Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a |
| matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry |
| Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he |
| was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on |
| the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which |
| was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to |
| capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he |
| could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And |
| before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet |
| glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear |
| something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and |
| wait." |
| |
| About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles, |
| and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the |
| meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay |
| like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the |
| quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under |
| the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the |
| same way. Then a guarded voice said: |
| |
| "Who goes there?" |
| |
| "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names." |
| |
| "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom |
| had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature. |
| |
| "'Tis well. Give the countersign." |
| |
| Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to |
| the brooding night: |
| |
| "BLOOD!" |
| |
| Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it, |
| tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was |
| an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it |
| lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate. |
| |
| The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn |
| himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a |
| skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought |
| a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or |
| "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it |
| would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought; |
| matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire |
| smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went |
| stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an |
| imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and |
| suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary |
| dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe" |
| stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no |
| tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the |
| village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no |
| excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way. |
| |
| They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and |
| Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded |
| arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper: |
| |
| "Luff, and bring her to the wind!" |
| |
| "Aye-aye, sir!" |
| |
| "Steady, steady-y-y-y!" |
| |
| "Steady it is, sir!" |
| |
| "Let her go off a point!" |
| |
| "Point it is, sir!" |
| |
| As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream |
| it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for |
| "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular. |
| |
| "What sail's she carrying?" |
| |
| "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir." |
| |
| "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye |
| --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!" |
| |
| "Aye-aye, sir!" |
| |
| "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!" |
| |
| "Aye-aye, sir!" |
| |
| "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port, |
| port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!" |
| |
| "Steady it is, sir!" |
| |
| The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her |
| head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so |
| there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was |
| said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was |
| passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed |
| where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of |
| star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening. |
| The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon |
| the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing |
| "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death |
| with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips. |
| It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island |
| beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a |
| broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last, |
| too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the |
| current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered |
| the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in |
| the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the |
| head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed |
| their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old |
| sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to |
| shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open |
| air in good weather, as became outlaws. |
| |
| They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty |
| steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some |
| bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone" |
| stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that |
| wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited |
| island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would |
| return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw |
| its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple, |
| and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines. |
| |
| When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of |
| corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass, |
| filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they |
| would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting |
| camp-fire. |
| |
| "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe. |
| |
| "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?" |
| |
| "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!" |
| |
| "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want |
| nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and |
| here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so." |
| |
| "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up, |
| mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that |
| blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe, |
| when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and |
| then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way." |
| |
| "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it, |
| you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it." |
| |
| "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like |
| they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a |
| hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put |
| sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--" |
| |
| "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck. |
| |
| "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do |
| that if you was a hermit." |
| |
| "Dern'd if I would," said Huck. |
| |
| "Well, what would you do?" |
| |
| "I dono. But I wouldn't do that." |
| |
| "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?" |
| |
| "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away." |
| |
| "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be |
| a disgrace." |
| |
| The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had |
| finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded |
| it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a |
| cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious |
| contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and |
| secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said: |
| |
| "What does pirates have to do?" |
| |
| Tom said: |
| |
| "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get |
| the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's |
| ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make |
| 'em walk a plank." |
| |
| "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill |
| the women." |
| |
| "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And |
| the women's always beautiful, too. |
| |
| "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver |
| and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm. |
| |
| "Who?" said Huck. |
| |
| "Why, the pirates." |
| |
| Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly. |
| |
| "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a |
| regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these." |
| |
| But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough, |
| after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand |
| that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for |
| wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe. |
| |
| Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the |
| eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the |
| Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the |
| weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main |
| had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers |
| inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority |
| to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to |
| say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as |
| that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from |
| heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge |
| of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was |
| conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing |
| wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then |
| the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding |
| conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of |
| times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin |
| plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no |
| getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only |
| "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain |
| simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So |
| they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business, |
| their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing. |
| Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent |
| pirates fell peacefully to sleep. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XIV |
| |
| WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and |
| rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the |
| cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in |
| the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred; |
| not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops |
| stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the |
| fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe |
| and Huck still slept. |
| |
| Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently |
| the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of |
| the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life |
| manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to |
| work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came |
| crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air |
| from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he |
| was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own |
| accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling, |
| by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to |
| go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its |
| curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and |
| began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that |
| he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a |
| doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared, |
| from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled |
| manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms, |
| and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug |
| climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to |
| it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire, |
| your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it |
| --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was |
| credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its |
| simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at |
| its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against |
| its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this |
| time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head, |
| and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of |
| enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and |
| stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one |
| side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel |
| and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at |
| intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had |
| probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to |
| be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long |
| lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near, |
| and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene. |
| |
| Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a |
| shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and |
| tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white |
| sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the |
| distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a |
| slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only |
| gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge |
| between them and civilization. |
| |
| They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and |
| ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found |
| a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad |
| oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a |
| wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee. |
| While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to |
| hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank |
| and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had |
| not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some |
| handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions |
| enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were |
| astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did |
| not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is |
| caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce |
| open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient |
| of hunger make, too. |
| |
| They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke, |
| and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They |
| tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush, |
| among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the |
| ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came |
| upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers. |
| |
| They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be |
| astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles |
| long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to |
| was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards |
| wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the |
| middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too |
| hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and |
| then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon |
| began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded |
| in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the |
| spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing |
| crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding |
| homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps |
| and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and |
| none was brave enough to speak his thought. |
| |
| For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar |
| sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a |
| clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound |
| became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started, |
| glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude. |
| There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen |
| boom came floating down out of the distance. |
| |
| "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath. |
| |
| "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper. |
| |
| "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--" |
| |
| "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk." |
| |
| They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom |
| troubled the solemn hush. |
| |
| "Let's go and see." |
| |
| They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town. |
| They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The |
| little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting |
| with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were |
| a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the |
| neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what |
| the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst |
| from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud, |
| that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again. |
| |
| "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!" |
| |
| "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner |
| got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him |
| come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put |
| quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody |
| that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop." |
| |
| "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread |
| do that." |
| |
| "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly |
| what they SAY over it before they start it out." |
| |
| "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and |
| they don't." |
| |
| "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves. |
| Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that." |
| |
| The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because |
| an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be |
| expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such |
| gravity. |
| |
| "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe. |
| |
| "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is." |
| |
| The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought |
| flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed: |
| |
| "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!" |
| |
| They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they |
| were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account; |
| tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor |
| lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being |
| indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole |
| town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety |
| was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after |
| all. |
| |
| As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed |
| business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They |
| were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious |
| trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it, |
| and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying |
| about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their |
| account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But |
| when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to |
| talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently |
| wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe |
| could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not |
| enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they |
| grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by |
| Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others |
| might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but-- |
| |
| Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined |
| in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get |
| out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness |
| clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to |
| rest for the moment. |
| |
| As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe |
| followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time, |
| watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees, |
| and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung |
| by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large |
| semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose |
| two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully |
| wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up |
| and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and |
| removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the |
| hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them |
| a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that |
| kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his |
| way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing, |
| and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XV |
| |
| A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading |
| toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was |
| half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he |
| struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam |
| quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he |
| had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along |
| till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his |
| jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through |
| the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before |
| ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and |
| saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank. |
| Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank, |
| watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four |
| strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's |
| stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting. |
| |
| Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast |
| off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up, |
| against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in |
| his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At |
| the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom |
| slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards |
| downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers. |
| |
| He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his |
| aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in |
| at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat |
| Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together, |
| talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the |
| door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he |
| pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing |
| cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might |
| squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began, |
| warily. |
| |
| "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up. |
| "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of |
| strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid." |
| |
| Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed" |
| himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his |
| aunt's foot. |
| |
| "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say |
| --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He |
| warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and |
| he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry. |
| |
| "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to |
| every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he |
| could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking |
| that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself |
| because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never, |
| never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart |
| would break. |
| |
| "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been |
| better in some ways--" |
| |
| "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not |
| see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take |
| care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't |
| know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a |
| comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most." |
| |
| "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of |
| the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my |
| Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him |
| sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over |
| again I'd hug him and bless him for it." |
| |
| "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just |
| exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took |
| and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur |
| would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head |
| with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his |
| troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--" |
| |
| But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely |
| down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than |
| anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word |
| for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself |
| than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's |
| grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with |
| joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to |
| his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still. |
| |
| He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was |
| conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim; |
| then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the |
| missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something" |
| soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that |
| the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town |
| below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged |
| against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village |
| --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have |
| driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the |
| search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the |
| drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good |
| swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday |
| night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be |
| given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom |
| shuddered. |
| |
| Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a |
| mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each |
| other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly |
| was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid |
| snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart. |
| |
| Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so |
| appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old |
| trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she |
| was through. |
| |
| He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making |
| broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and |
| turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her |
| sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the |
| candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full |
| of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the |
| candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His |
| face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark |
| hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and |
| straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him. |
| |
| He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large |
| there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was |
| tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and |
| slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped |
| into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a |
| mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself |
| stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for |
| this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the |
| skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore |
| legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be |
| made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and |
| entered the woods. |
| |
| He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep |
| awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far |
| spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the |
| island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the |
| great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A |
| little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and |
| heard Joe say: |
| |
| "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He |
| knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for |
| that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?" |
| |
| "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?" |
| |
| "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't |
| back here to breakfast." |
| |
| "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping |
| grandly into camp. |
| |
| A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as |
| the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his |
| adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the |
| tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till |
| noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XVI |
| |
| AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the |
| bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a |
| soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands. |
| Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They |
| were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English |
| walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on |
| Friday morning. |
| |
| After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and |
| chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until |
| they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal |
| water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their |
| legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun. |
| And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each |
| other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with |
| averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and |
| struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all |
| went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing, |
| sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time. |
| |
| When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the |
| dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by |
| and by break for the water again and go through the original |
| performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked |
| skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a |
| ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none |
| would yield this proudest post to his neighbor. |
| |
| Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and |
| "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another |
| swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off |
| his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his |
| ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the |
| protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he |
| had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to |
| rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell |
| to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay |
| drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with |
| his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his |
| weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He |
| erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving |
| the other boys together and joining them. |
| |
| But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so |
| homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay |
| very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted, |
| but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready |
| to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon, |
| he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of |
| cheerfulness: |
| |
| "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore |
| it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light |
| on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?" |
| |
| But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply. |
| Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was |
| discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking |
| very gloomy. Finally he said: |
| |
| "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome." |
| |
| "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of |
| the fishing that's here." |
| |
| "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home." |
| |
| "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere." |
| |
| "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there |
| ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home." |
| |
| "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon." |
| |
| "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one. |
| I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little. |
| |
| "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck? |
| Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like |
| it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?" |
| |
| Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it. |
| |
| "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising. |
| "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself. |
| |
| "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get |
| laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies. |
| We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can |
| get along without him, per'aps." |
| |
| But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go |
| sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see |
| Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an |
| ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade |
| off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at |
| Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said: |
| |
| "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now |
| it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom." |
| |
| "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay." |
| |
| "Tom, I better go." |
| |
| "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you." |
| |
| Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said: |
| |
| "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for |
| you when we get to shore." |
| |
| "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all." |
| |
| Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a |
| strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too. |
| He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It |
| suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He |
| made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his |
| comrades, yelling: |
| |
| "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!" |
| |
| They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they |
| were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at |
| last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a |
| war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had |
| told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible |
| excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret |
| would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had |
| meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction. |
| |
| The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will, |
| chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the |
| genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to |
| learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to |
| try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never |
| smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit" |
| the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway. |
| |
| Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff, |
| charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant |
| taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said: |
| |
| "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt |
| long ago." |
| |
| "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing." |
| |
| "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I |
| wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom. |
| |
| "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk |
| just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't." |
| |
| "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck. |
| |
| "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the |
| slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and |
| Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember, |
| Huck, 'bout me saying that?" |
| |
| "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white |
| alley. No, 'twas the day before." |
| |
| "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it." |
| |
| "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel |
| sick." |
| |
| "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you |
| Jeff Thatcher couldn't." |
| |
| "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him |
| try it once. HE'D see!" |
| |
| "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller |
| tackle it once." |
| |
| "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any |
| more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM." |
| |
| "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now." |
| |
| "So do I." |
| |
| "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're |
| around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.' |
| And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll |
| say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't |
| very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG |
| enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as |
| ca'm, and then just see 'em look!" |
| |
| "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!" |
| |
| "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating, |
| won't they wish they'd been along?" |
| |
| "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!" |
| |
| So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow |
| disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously |
| increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting |
| fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues |
| fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their |
| throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings |
| followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable, |
| now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed. |
| Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might |
| and main. Joe said feebly: |
| |
| "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it." |
| |
| Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance: |
| |
| "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the |
| spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it." |
| |
| So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome, |
| and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both |
| very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they |
| had had any trouble they had got rid of it. |
| |
| They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look, |
| and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare |
| theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they |
| ate at dinner had disagreed with them. |
| |
| About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding |
| oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys |
| huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of |
| the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was |
| stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush |
| continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in |
| the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that |
| vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by |
| another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came |
| sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting |
| breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit |
| of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned |
| night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and |
| distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white, |
| startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling |
| down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A |
| sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the |
| flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the |
| forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops |
| right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick |
| gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the |
| leaves. |
| |
| "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom. |
| |
| They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no |
| two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the |
| trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after |
| another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a |
| drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets |
| along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring |
| wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly. |
| However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under |
| the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company |
| in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the |
| old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have |
| allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the |
| sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast. |
| The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and |
| bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank. |
| Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of |
| lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in |
| clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy |
| river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim |
| outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the |
| drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while |
| some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger |
| growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting |
| explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm |
| culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island |
| to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and |
| deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a |
| wild night for homeless young heads to be out in. |
| |
| But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker |
| and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The |
| boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was |
| still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the |
| shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and |
| they were not under it when the catastrophe happened. |
| |
| Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were |
| but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision |
| against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through |
| and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently |
| discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had |
| been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from |
| the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so |
| they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the |
| under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then |
| they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and |
| were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a |
| feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified |
| their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to |
| sleep on, anywhere around. |
| |
| As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them, |
| and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got |
| scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After |
| the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once |
| more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as |
| he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming, |
| or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray |
| of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This |
| was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a |
| change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before |
| they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like |
| so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went |
| tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement. |
| |
| By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon |
| each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped |
| each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an |
| extremely satisfactory one. |
| |
| They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a |
| difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of |
| hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple |
| impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other |
| process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished |
| they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with |
| such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe |
| and took their whiff as it passed, in due form. |
| |
| And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had |
| gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without |
| having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to |
| be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high |
| promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after |
| supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening. |
| They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would |
| have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will |
| leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use |
| for them at present. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XVII |
| |
| BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil |
| Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being |
| put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet |
| possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all |
| conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air, |
| and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a |
| burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and |
| gradually gave them up. |
| |
| In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the |
| deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found |
| nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized: |
| |
| "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got |
| anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob. |
| |
| Presently she stopped, and said to herself: |
| |
| "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say |
| that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll |
| never, never, never see him any more." |
| |
| This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling |
| down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of |
| Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and |
| talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they |
| saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with |
| awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker |
| pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and |
| then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am |
| now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just |
| this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you |
| know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!" |
| |
| Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and |
| many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or |
| less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided |
| who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them, |
| the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and |
| were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no |
| other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the |
| remembrance: |
| |
| "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once." |
| |
| But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that, |
| and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered |
| away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices. |
| |
| When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell |
| began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still |
| Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush |
| that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment |
| in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there |
| was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses |
| as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None |
| could remember when the little church had been so full before. There |
| was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly |
| entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all |
| in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well, |
| rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front |
| pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by |
| muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed. |
| A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection |
| and the Life." |
| |
| As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the |
| graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that |
| every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in |
| remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always |
| before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor |
| boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the |
| departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the |
| people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes |
| were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had |
| seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The |
| congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on, |
| till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping |
| mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way |
| to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit. |
| |
| There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment |
| later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes |
| above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then |
| another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one |
| impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came |
| marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of |
| drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in |
| the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon! |
| |
| Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored |
| ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while |
| poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to |
| do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and |
| started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said: |
| |
| "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck." |
| |
| "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And |
| the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing |
| capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before. |
| |
| Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God |
| from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!" |
| |
| And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and |
| while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the |
| envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was |
| the proudest moment of his life. |
| |
| As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be |
| willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that |
| once more. |
| |
| Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's |
| varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew |
| which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XVIII |
| |
| THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his |
| brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to |
| the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six |
| miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the |
| town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and |
| alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a |
| chaos of invalided benches. |
| |
| At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to |
| Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of |
| talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said: |
| |
| "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody |
| suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity |
| you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come |
| over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give |
| me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off." |
| |
| "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you |
| would if you had thought of it." |
| |
| "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say, |
| now, would you, if you'd thought of it?" |
| |
| "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything." |
| |
| "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved |
| tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd |
| cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it." |
| |
| "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's |
| giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of |
| anything." |
| |
| "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and |
| DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and |
| wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so |
| little." |
| |
| "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom. |
| |
| "I'd know it better if you acted more like it." |
| |
| "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I |
| dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?" |
| |
| "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing. |
| What did you dream?" |
| |
| "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the |
| bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him." |
| |
| "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take |
| even that much trouble about us." |
| |
| "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here." |
| |
| "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?" |
| |
| "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now." |
| |
| "Well, try to recollect--can't you?" |
| |
| "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--" |
| |
| "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!" |
| |
| Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then |
| said: |
| |
| "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!" |
| |
| "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!" |
| |
| "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'" |
| |
| "Go ON, Tom!" |
| |
| "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you |
| believed the door was open." |
| |
| "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!" |
| |
| "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if |
| you made Sid go and--and--" |
| |
| "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?" |
| |
| "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it." |
| |
| "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my |
| days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny |
| Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her |
| get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!" |
| |
| "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I |
| warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more |
| responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something." |
| |
| "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!" |
| |
| "And then you began to cry." |
| |
| "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--" |
| |
| "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same, |
| and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd |
| throwed it out her own self--" |
| |
| "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you |
| was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!" |
| |
| "Then Sid he said--he said--" |
| |
| "I don't think I said anything," said Sid. |
| |
| "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary. |
| |
| "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?" |
| |
| "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone |
| to, but if I'd been better sometimes--" |
| |
| "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!" |
| |
| "And you shut him up sharp." |
| |
| "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel |
| there, somewheres!" |
| |
| "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and |
| you told about Peter and the Painkiller--" |
| |
| "Just as true as I live!" |
| |
| "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for |
| us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss |
| Harper hugged and cried, and she went." |
| |
| "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in |
| these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a' |
| seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!" |
| |
| "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every |
| word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and |
| wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off |
| being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you |
| looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned |
| over and kissed you on the lips." |
| |
| "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And |
| she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the |
| guiltiest of villains. |
| |
| "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized |
| just audibly. |
| |
| "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he |
| was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if |
| you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the |
| good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering |
| and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though |
| goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His |
| blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's |
| few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long |
| night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've |
| hendered me long enough." |
| |
| The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper |
| and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better |
| judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the |
| house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any |
| mistakes in it!" |
| |
| What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing, |
| but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the |
| public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see |
| the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food |
| and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as |
| proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the |
| drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie |
| into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away |
| at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would |
| have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his |
| glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a |
| circus. |
| |
| At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered |
| such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not |
| long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their |
| adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing |
| likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish |
| material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely |
| puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached. |
| |
| Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory |
| was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished, |
| maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see |
| that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she |
| arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group |
| of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was |
| tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes, |
| pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter |
| when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her |
| captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye |
| in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious |
| vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set |
| him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that |
| he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved |
| irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and |
| wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more |
| particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp |
| pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but |
| her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She |
| said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity: |
| |
| "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?" |
| |
| "I did come--didn't you see me?" |
| |
| "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?" |
| |
| "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU." |
| |
| "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about |
| the picnic." |
| |
| "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?" |
| |
| "My ma's going to let me have one." |
| |
| "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come." |
| |
| "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I |
| want, and I want you." |
| |
| "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?" |
| |
| "By and by. Maybe about vacation." |
| |
| "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?" |
| |
| "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced |
| ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence |
| about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the |
| great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within |
| three feet of it." |
| |
| "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller. |
| |
| "Yes." |
| |
| "And me?" said Sally Rogers. |
| |
| "Yes." |
| |
| "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?" |
| |
| "Yes." |
| |
| And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged |
| for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still |
| talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears |
| came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on |
| chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of |
| everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and |
| had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded |
| pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast |
| in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what |
| SHE'D do. |
| |
| At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant |
| self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate |
| her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden |
| falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind |
| the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so |
| absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book, |
| that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides. |
| Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for |
| throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He |
| called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He |
| wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked, |
| for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He |
| did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he |
| could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as |
| otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and |
| again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could |
| not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that |
| Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the |
| living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her |
| fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered. |
| |
| Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to |
| attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in |
| vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever |
| going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those |
| things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school |
| let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it. |
| |
| "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole |
| town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is |
| aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw |
| this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch |
| you out! I'll just take and--" |
| |
| And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy |
| --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You |
| holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the |
| imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction. |
| |
| Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of |
| Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the |
| other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but |
| as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph |
| began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness |
| followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her |
| ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she |
| grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When |
| poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept |
| exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience |
| at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and |
| burst into tears, and got up and walked away. |
| |
| Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she |
| said: |
| |
| "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!" |
| |
| So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said |
| she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on, |
| crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was |
| humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl |
| had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer. |
| He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him. |
| He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much |
| risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his |
| opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and |
| poured ink upon the page. |
| |
| Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act, |
| and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now, |
| intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their |
| troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she |
| had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she |
| was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with |
| shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged |
| spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XIX |
| |
| TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt |
| said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an |
| unpromising market: |
| |
| "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!" |
| |
| "Auntie, what have I done?" |
| |
| "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an |
| old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage |
| about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that |
| you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I |
| don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes |
| me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make |
| such a fool of myself and never say a word." |
| |
| This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had |
| seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked |
| mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything |
| to say for a moment. Then he said: |
| |
| "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think." |
| |
| "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own |
| selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from |
| Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could |
| think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think |
| to pity us and save us from sorrow." |
| |
| "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I |
| didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you |
| that night." |
| |
| "What did you come for, then?" |
| |
| "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got |
| drownded." |
| |
| "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could |
| believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never |
| did--and I know it, Tom." |
| |
| "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't." |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times |
| worse." |
| |
| "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from |
| grieving--that was all that made me come." |
| |
| "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power |
| of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it |
| ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?" |
| |
| "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got |
| all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I |
| couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my |
| pocket and kept mum." |
| |
| "What bark?" |
| |
| "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now, |
| you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest." |
| |
| The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness |
| dawned in her eyes. |
| |
| "DID you kiss me, Tom?" |
| |
| "Why, yes, I did." |
| |
| "Are you sure you did, Tom?" |
| |
| "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure." |
| |
| "What did you kiss me for, Tom?" |
| |
| "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry." |
| |
| The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in |
| her voice when she said: |
| |
| "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't |
| bother me any more." |
| |
| The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a |
| jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her |
| hand, and said to herself: |
| |
| "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a |
| blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the |
| Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such |
| goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a |
| lie. I won't look." |
| |
| She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put |
| out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once |
| more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the |
| thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me." |
| So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's |
| piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the |
| boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!" |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XX |
| |
| THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom, |
| that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy |
| again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky |
| Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his |
| manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said: |
| |
| "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever, |
| ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't |
| you?" |
| |
| The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face: |
| |
| "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll |
| never speak to you again." |
| |
| She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not |
| even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the |
| right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a |
| fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were |
| a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently |
| encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She |
| hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to |
| Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to |
| "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured |
| spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred |
| Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away. |
| |
| Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself. |
| The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied |
| ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty |
| had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village |
| schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and |
| absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept |
| that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was |
| perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy |
| and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two |
| theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in |
| the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the |
| door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious |
| moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant |
| she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's |
| ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the |
| leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored |
| frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell |
| on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse |
| of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the |
| hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust |
| the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with |
| shame and vexation. |
| |
| "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a |
| person and look at what they're looking at." |
| |
| "How could I know you was looking at anything?" |
| |
| "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're |
| going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be |
| whipped, and I never was whipped in school." |
| |
| Then she stamped her little foot and said: |
| |
| "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen. |
| You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she |
| flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying. |
| |
| Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said |
| to himself: |
| |
| "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school! |
| Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so |
| thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell |
| old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting |
| even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask |
| who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way |
| he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the |
| right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell |
| on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a |
| kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way |
| out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All |
| right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it |
| out!" |
| |
| Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments |
| the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong |
| interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls' |
| side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he |
| did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He |
| could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently |
| the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full |
| of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her |
| lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She |
| did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he |
| spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only |
| seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be |
| glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she |
| found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an |
| impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and |
| forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell |
| about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save |
| his life!" |
| |
| Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all |
| broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly |
| upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he |
| had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck |
| to the denial from principle. |
| |
| A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air |
| was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened |
| himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book, |
| but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the |
| pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched |
| his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently |
| for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read! |
| Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit |
| look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot |
| his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash, |
| too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention. |
| Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring |
| through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little |
| instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom |
| only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help |
| for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school. |
| Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even |
| the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten |
| --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?" |
| |
| There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness |
| continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt. |
| |
| "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?" |
| |
| A denial. Another pause. |
| |
| "Joseph Harper, did you?" |
| |
| Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the |
| slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of |
| boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls: |
| |
| "Amy Lawrence?" |
| |
| A shake of the head. |
| |
| "Gracie Miller?" |
| |
| The same sign. |
| |
| "Susan Harper, did you do this?" |
| |
| Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling |
| from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of |
| the situation. |
| |
| "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror] |
| --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal] |
| --"did you tear this book?" |
| |
| A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his |
| feet and shouted--"I done it!" |
| |
| The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a |
| moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped |
| forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the |
| adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay |
| enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own |
| act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr. |
| Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the |
| added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be |
| dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his |
| captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either. |
| |
| Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple; |
| for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting |
| her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way, |
| soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's |
| latest words lingering dreamily in his ear-- |
| |
| "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!" |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXI |
| |
| VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew |
| severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a |
| good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom |
| idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and |
| young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins' |
| lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under |
| his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle |
| age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great |
| day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he |
| seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least |
| shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their |
| days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They |
| threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept |
| ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful |
| success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from |
| the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a |
| plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's |
| boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons |
| for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and |
| had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go |
| on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to |
| interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great |
| occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy |
| said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on |
| Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his |
| chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried |
| away to school. |
| |
| In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in |
| the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with |
| wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in |
| his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him. |
| He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and |
| six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town |
| and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of |
| citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the |
| scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of |
| small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort; |
| rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in |
| lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their |
| grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and |
| the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with |
| non-participating scholars. |
| |
| The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly |
| recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the |
| stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and |
| spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the |
| machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though |
| cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his |
| manufactured bow and retired. |
| |
| A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc., |
| performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and |
| sat down flushed and happy. |
| |
| Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into |
| the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death" |
| speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the |
| middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under |
| him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the |
| house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than |
| its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom |
| struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak |
| attempt at applause, but it died early. |
| |
| "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came |
| Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises, |
| and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The |
| prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions" |
| by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of |
| the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with |
| dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to |
| "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been |
| illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their |
| grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line |
| clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other |
| Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of |
| Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted"; |
| "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc. |
| |
| A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted |
| melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language"; |
| another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words |
| and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that |
| conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable |
| sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one |
| of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort |
| was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and |
| religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring |
| insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the |
| banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient |
| to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps. |
| There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel |
| obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find |
| that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in |
| the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But |
| enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable. |
| |
| Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was |
| read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can |
| endure an extract from it: |
| |
| "In the common walks of life, with what delightful |
| emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some |
| anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy |
| sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the |
| voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the |
| festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her |
| graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling |
| through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is |
| brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly. |
| |
| "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by, |
| and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into |
| the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright |
| dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to |
| her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming |
| than the last. But after a while she finds that |
| beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the |
| flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates |
| harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its |
| charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart, |
| she turns away with the conviction that earthly |
| pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!" |
| |
| And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to |
| time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How |
| sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed |
| with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic. |
| |
| Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting" |
| paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two |
| stanzas of it will do: |
| |
| "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA |
| |
| "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well! |
| But yet for a while do I leave thee now! |
| Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell, |
| And burning recollections throng my brow! |
| For I have wandered through thy flowery woods; |
| Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream; |
| Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods, |
| And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam. |
| |
| "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart, |
| Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes; |
| 'Tis from no stranger land I now must part, |
| 'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs. |
| Welcome and home were mine within this State, |
| Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me |
| And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete, |
| When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!" |
| |
| There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was |
| very satisfactory, nevertheless. |
| |
| Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young |
| lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and |
| began to read in a measured, solemn tone: |
| |
| "A VISION |
| |
| "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the |
| throne on high not a single star quivered; but |
| the deep intonations of the heavy thunder |
| constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the |
| terrific lightning revelled in angry mood |
| through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming |
| to scorn the power exerted over its terror by |
| the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous |
| winds unanimously came forth from their mystic |
| homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by |
| their aid the wildness of the scene. |
| |
| "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human |
| sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof, |
| |
| "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter |
| and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss |
| in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of |
| those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks |
| of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a |
| queen of beauty unadorned save by her own |
| transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it |
| failed to make even a sound, and but for the |
| magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as |
| other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided |
| away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness |
| rested upon her features, like icy tears upon |
| the robe of December, as she pointed to the |
| contending elements without, and bade me contemplate |
| the two beings presented." |
| |
| This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with |
| a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took |
| the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest |
| effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the |
| prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it |
| was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that |
| Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it. |
| |
| It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in |
| which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience |
| referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average. |
| |
| Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair |
| aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of |
| America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he |
| made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered |
| titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set |
| himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only |
| distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced. |
| He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not |
| to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon |
| him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it |
| even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above, |
| pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle |
| came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag |
| tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly |
| descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung |
| downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher |
| and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's |
| head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her |
| desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an |
| instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did |
| blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy |
| had GILDED it! |
| |
| That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come. |
| |
| NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in |
| this chapter are taken without alteration from a |
| volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western |
| Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after |
| the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much |
| happier than any mere imitations could be. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXII |
| |
| TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by |
| the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from |
| smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he |
| found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the |
| surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very |
| thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and |
| swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a |
| chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing |
| from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up |
| --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and |
| fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was |
| apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since |
| he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned |
| about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his |
| hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia |
| and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most |
| discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the |
| mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of |
| injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the |
| Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never |
| trust a man like that again. |
| |
| The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated |
| to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however |
| --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found |
| to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could, |
| took the desire away, and the charm of it. |
| |
| Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning |
| to hang a little heavily on his hands. |
| |
| He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so |
| he abandoned it. |
| |
| The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a |
| sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were |
| happy for two days. |
| |
| Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained |
| hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in |
| the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States |
| Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not |
| twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it. |
| |
| A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in |
| tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for |
| girls--and then circusing was abandoned. |
| |
| A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the |
| village duller and drearier than ever. |
| |
| There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so |
| delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder. |
| |
| Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her |
| parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere. |
| |
| The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very |
| cancer for permanency and pain. |
| |
| Then came the measles. |
| |
| During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its |
| happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got |
| upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change |
| had come over everything and every creature. There had been a |
| "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but |
| even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the |
| sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him |
| everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly |
| away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him |
| visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who |
| called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a |
| warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression; |
| and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of |
| Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his |
| heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all |
| the town was lost, forever and forever. |
| |
| And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain, |
| awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his |
| head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his |
| doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was |
| about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above |
| to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might |
| have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a |
| battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the |
| getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf |
| from under an insect like himself. |
| |
| By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its |
| object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His |
| second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms. |
| |
| The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks |
| he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad |
| at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how |
| lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted |
| listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a |
| juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her |
| victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a |
| stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXIII |
| |
| AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder |
| trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village |
| talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to |
| the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and |
| fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his |
| hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of |
| knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be |
| comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver |
| all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him. |
| It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to |
| divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he |
| wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet. |
| |
| "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?" |
| |
| "'Bout what?" |
| |
| "You know what." |
| |
| "Oh--'course I haven't." |
| |
| "Never a word?" |
| |
| "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?" |
| |
| "Well, I was afeard." |
| |
| "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out. |
| YOU know that." |
| |
| Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause: |
| |
| "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?" |
| |
| "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me |
| they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way." |
| |
| "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep |
| mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer." |
| |
| "I'm agreed." |
| |
| So they swore again with dread solemnities. |
| |
| "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it." |
| |
| "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the |
| time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers." |
| |
| "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner. |
| Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?" |
| |
| "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't |
| ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money |
| to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do |
| that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of |
| good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two; |
| and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck." |
| |
| "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my |
| line. I wish we could get him out of there." |
| |
| "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any |
| good; they'd ketch him again." |
| |
| "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the |
| dickens when he never done--that." |
| |
| "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking |
| villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before." |
| |
| "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he |
| was to get free they'd lynch him." |
| |
| "And they'd do it, too." |
| |
| The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the |
| twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood |
| of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that |
| something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But |
| nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in |
| this luckless captive. |
| |
| The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating |
| and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor |
| and there were no guards. |
| |
| His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences |
| before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and |
| treacherous to the last degree when Potter said: |
| |
| "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this |
| town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I, |
| 'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the |
| good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've |
| all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck |
| don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well, |
| boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the |
| only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's |
| right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't |
| talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended |
| me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't |
| ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime |
| comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of |
| trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly |
| faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me |
| touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but |
| mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter |
| a power, and they'd help him more if they could." |
| |
| Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of |
| horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room, |
| drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself |
| to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously |
| avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same |
| dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his |
| ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably |
| heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more |
| relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the |
| village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and |
| unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the |
| jury's verdict would be. |
| |
| Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He |
| was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to |
| sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for |
| this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented |
| in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took |
| their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and |
| hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all |
| the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe, |
| stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and |
| the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings |
| among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These |
| details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation |
| that was as impressive as it was fascinating. |
| |
| Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter |
| washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder |
| was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some |
| further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said: |
| |
| "Take the witness." |
| |
| The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when |
| his own counsel said: |
| |
| "I have no questions to ask him." |
| |
| The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse. |
| Counsel for the prosecution said: |
| |
| "Take the witness." |
| |
| "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied. |
| |
| A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's |
| possession. |
| |
| "Take the witness." |
| |
| Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience |
| began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his |
| client's life without an effort? |
| |
| Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when |
| brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the |
| stand without being cross-questioned. |
| |
| Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the |
| graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was |
| brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined |
| by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house |
| expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench. |
| Counsel for the prosecution now said: |
| |
| "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we |
| have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question, |
| upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here." |
| |
| A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and |
| rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in |
| the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion |
| testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said: |
| |
| "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we |
| foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed |
| while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium |
| produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that |
| plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!" |
| |
| A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even |
| excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest |
| upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked |
| wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered. |
| |
| "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the |
| hour of midnight?" |
| |
| Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The |
| audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a |
| few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and |
| managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house |
| hear: |
| |
| "In the graveyard!" |
| |
| "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--" |
| |
| "In the graveyard." |
| |
| A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face. |
| |
| "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?" |
| |
| "Yes, sir." |
| |
| "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?" |
| |
| "Near as I am to you." |
| |
| "Were you hidden, or not?" |
| |
| "I was hid." |
| |
| "Where?" |
| |
| "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave." |
| |
| Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start. |
| |
| "Any one with you?" |
| |
| "Yes, sir. I went there with--" |
| |
| "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We |
| will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with |
| you." |
| |
| Tom hesitated and looked confused. |
| |
| "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always |
| respectable. What did you take there?" |
| |
| "Only a--a--dead cat." |
| |
| There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked. |
| |
| "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us |
| everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything, |
| and don't be afraid." |
| |
| Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his |
| words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased |
| but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips |
| and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of |
| time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon |
| pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said: |
| |
| "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell, |
| Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--" |
| |
| Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his |
| way through all opposers, and was gone! |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXIV |
| |
| TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of |
| the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village |
| paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be |
| President, yet, if he escaped hanging. |
| |
| As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom |
| and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort |
| of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find |
| fault with it. |
| |
| Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights |
| were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always |
| with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to |
| stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of |
| wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer |
| the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid |
| that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding |
| Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court. |
| The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of |
| that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the |
| lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been |
| sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's |
| confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated. |
| |
| Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly |
| he wished he had sealed up his tongue. |
| |
| Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the |
| other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw |
| a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse. |
| |
| Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun |
| Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a |
| detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head, |
| looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of |
| that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you |
| can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got |
| through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before. |
| |
| The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened |
| weight of apprehension. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXV |
| |
| THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has |
| a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This |
| desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe |
| Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone |
| fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck |
| would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to |
| him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a |
| hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no |
| capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time |
| which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck. |
| |
| "Oh, most anywhere." |
| |
| "Why, is it hid all around?" |
| |
| "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck |
| --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a |
| limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but |
| mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses." |
| |
| "Who hides it?" |
| |
| "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school |
| sup'rintendents?" |
| |
| "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have |
| a good time." |
| |
| "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and |
| leave it there." |
| |
| "Don't they come after it any more?" |
| |
| "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or |
| else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by |
| and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the |
| marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's |
| mostly signs and hy'roglyphics." |
| |
| "Hyro--which?" |
| |
| "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean |
| anything." |
| |
| "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?" |
| |
| "No." |
| |
| "Well then, how you going to find the marks?" |
| |
| "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or |
| on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out. |
| Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again |
| some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch, |
| and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em." |
| |
| "Is it under all of them?" |
| |
| "How you talk! No!" |
| |
| "Then how you going to know which one to go for?" |
| |
| "Go for all of 'em!" |
| |
| "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer." |
| |
| "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred |
| dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds. |
| How's that?" |
| |
| Huck's eyes glowed. |
| |
| "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred |
| dollars and I don't want no di'monds." |
| |
| "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some |
| of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's |
| worth six bits or a dollar." |
| |
| "No! Is that so?" |
| |
| "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?" |
| |
| "Not as I remember." |
| |
| "Oh, kings have slathers of them." |
| |
| "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom." |
| |
| "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft |
| of 'em hopping around." |
| |
| "Do they hop?" |
| |
| "Hop?--your granny! No!" |
| |
| "Well, what did you say they did, for?" |
| |
| "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do |
| they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around, |
| you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard." |
| |
| "Richard? What's his other name?" |
| |
| "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name." |
| |
| "No?" |
| |
| "But they don't." |
| |
| "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king |
| and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you |
| going to dig first?" |
| |
| "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the |
| hill t'other side of Still-House branch?" |
| |
| "I'm agreed." |
| |
| So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their |
| three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves |
| down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke. |
| |
| "I like this," said Tom. |
| |
| "So do I." |
| |
| "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your |
| share?" |
| |
| "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to |
| every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time." |
| |
| "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?" |
| |
| "Save it? What for?" |
| |
| "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by." |
| |
| "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some |
| day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd |
| clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?" |
| |
| "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red |
| necktie and a bull pup, and get married." |
| |
| "Married!" |
| |
| "That's it." |
| |
| "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind." |
| |
| "Wait--you'll see." |
| |
| "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my |
| mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty |
| well." |
| |
| "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight." |
| |
| "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you |
| better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name |
| of the gal?" |
| |
| "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl." |
| |
| "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's |
| right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?" |
| |
| "I'll tell you some time--not now." |
| |
| "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer |
| than ever." |
| |
| "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and |
| we'll go to digging." |
| |
| They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled |
| another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said: |
| |
| "Do they always bury it as deep as this?" |
| |
| "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the |
| right place." |
| |
| So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little, |
| but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some |
| time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from |
| his brow with his sleeve, and said: |
| |
| "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?" |
| |
| "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on |
| Cardiff Hill back of the widow's." |
| |
| "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from |
| us, Tom? It's on her land." |
| |
| "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one |
| of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference |
| whose land it's on." |
| |
| That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said: |
| |
| "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?" |
| |
| "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches |
| interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now." |
| |
| "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime." |
| |
| "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter |
| is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the |
| shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!" |
| |
| "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now |
| hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way. |
| Can you get out?" |
| |
| "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody |
| sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go |
| for it." |
| |
| "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night." |
| |
| "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes." |
| |
| The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in |
| the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by |
| old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked |
| in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the |
| distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were |
| subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged |
| that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to |
| dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and |
| their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened, |
| but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon |
| something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone |
| or a chunk. At last Tom said: |
| |
| "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again." |
| |
| "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot." |
| |
| "I know it, but then there's another thing." |
| |
| "What's that?". |
| |
| "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too |
| early." |
| |
| Huck dropped his shovel. |
| |
| "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this |
| one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of |
| thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts |
| a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time; |
| and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front |
| a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here." |
| |
| "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a |
| dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it." |
| |
| "Lordy!" |
| |
| "Yes, they do. I've always heard that." |
| |
| "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A |
| body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure." |
| |
| "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to |
| stick his skull out and say something!" |
| |
| "Don't Tom! It's awful." |
| |
| "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit." |
| |
| "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else." |
| |
| "All right, I reckon we better." |
| |
| "What'll it be?" |
| |
| Tom considered awhile; and then said: |
| |
| "The ha'nted house. That's it!" |
| |
| "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight |
| worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come |
| sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your |
| shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I |
| couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could." |
| |
| "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't |
| hender us from digging there in the daytime." |
| |
| "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that |
| ha'nted house in the day nor the night." |
| |
| "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been |
| murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except |
| in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular |
| ghosts." |
| |
| "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom, |
| you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to |
| reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em." |
| |
| "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so |
| what's the use of our being afeard?" |
| |
| "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I |
| reckon it's taking chances." |
| |
| They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of |
| the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly |
| isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very |
| doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a |
| corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to |
| see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as |
| befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the |
| right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way |
| homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff |
| Hill. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXVI |
| |
| ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had |
| come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house; |
| Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said: |
| |
| "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?" |
| |
| Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted |
| his eyes with a startled look in them-- |
| |
| "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!" |
| |
| "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was |
| Friday." |
| |
| "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an |
| awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday." |
| |
| "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but |
| Friday ain't." |
| |
| "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it |
| out, Huck." |
| |
| "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had |
| a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats." |
| |
| "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?" |
| |
| "No." |
| |
| "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that |
| there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty |
| sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play. |
| Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?" |
| |
| "No. Who's Robin Hood?" |
| |
| "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the |
| best. He was a robber." |
| |
| "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?" |
| |
| "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like. |
| But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with |
| 'em perfectly square." |
| |
| "Well, he must 'a' been a brick." |
| |
| "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was. |
| They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in |
| England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow |
| and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half." |
| |
| "What's a YEW bow?" |
| |
| "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that |
| dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll |
| play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you." |
| |
| "I'm agreed." |
| |
| So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a |
| yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the |
| morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink |
| into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of |
| the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff |
| Hill. |
| |
| On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again. |
| They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in |
| their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there |
| were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting |
| down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and |
| turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this |
| time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling |
| that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the |
| requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting. |
| |
| When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and |
| grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun, |
| and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the |
| place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they |
| crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown, |
| floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a |
| ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and |
| abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened |
| pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound, |
| and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat. |
| |
| In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the |
| place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own |
| boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs. |
| This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring |
| each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw |
| their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same |
| signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised |
| mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their |
| courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and |
| begin work when-- |
| |
| "Sh!" said Tom. |
| |
| "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright. |
| |
| "Sh!... There!... Hear it?" |
| |
| "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!" |
| |
| "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door." |
| |
| The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to |
| knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear. |
| |
| "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper |
| another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!" |
| |
| Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and |
| dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw |
| t'other man before." |
| |
| "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant |
| in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white |
| whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore |
| green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice; |
| they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the |
| wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less |
| guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded: |
| |
| "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's |
| dangerous." |
| |
| "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast |
| surprise of the boys. "Milksop!" |
| |
| This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was |
| silence for some time. Then Joe said: |
| |
| "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come |
| of it." |
| |
| "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about. |
| 'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed." |
| |
| "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody |
| would suspicion us that saw us." |
| |
| "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that |
| fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only |
| it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys |
| playing over there on the hill right in full view." |
| |
| "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this |
| remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was |
| Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they |
| had waited a year. |
| |
| The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and |
| thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said: |
| |
| "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there |
| till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town |
| just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've |
| spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for |
| Texas! We'll leg it together!" |
| |
| This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun |
| Joe said: |
| |
| "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch." |
| |
| He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade |
| stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher |
| began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore |
| now. |
| |
| The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered: |
| |
| "Now's our chance--come!" |
| |
| Huck said: |
| |
| "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake." |
| |
| Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and |
| started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak |
| from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He |
| never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging |
| moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity |
| growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun |
| was setting. |
| |
| Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly |
| upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him |
| up with his foot and said: |
| |
| "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's |
| happened." |
| |
| "My! have I been asleep?" |
| |
| "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we |
| do with what little swag we've got left?" |
| |
| "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to |
| take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's |
| something to carry." |
| |
| "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more." |
| |
| "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better." |
| |
| "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right |
| chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good |
| place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep." |
| |
| "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down, |
| raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that |
| jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for |
| himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter, |
| who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife. |
| |
| The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant. |
| With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of |
| it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to |
| make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the |
| happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to |
| where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and |
| easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW |
| we're here!" |
| |
| Joe's knife struck upon something. |
| |
| "Hello!" said he. |
| |
| "What is it?" said his comrade. |
| |
| "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and |
| we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole." |
| |
| He reached his hand in and drew it out-- |
| |
| "Man, it's money!" |
| |
| The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys |
| above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted. |
| |
| Joe's comrade said: |
| |
| "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst |
| the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a |
| minute ago." |
| |
| He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick, |
| looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to |
| himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was |
| not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the |
| slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in |
| blissful silence. |
| |
| "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe. |
| |
| "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one |
| summer," the stranger observed. |
| |
| "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say." |
| |
| "Now you won't need to do that job." |
| |
| The half-breed frowned. Said he: |
| |
| "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't |
| robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his |
| eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go |
| home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me." |
| |
| "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?" |
| |
| "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no! |
| [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh |
| earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What |
| business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth |
| on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard |
| anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and |
| see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my |
| den." |
| |
| "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number |
| One?" |
| |
| "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common." |
| |
| "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start." |
| |
| Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously |
| peeping out. Presently he said: |
| |
| "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be |
| up-stairs?" |
| |
| The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife, |
| halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The |
| boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came |
| creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke |
| the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the |
| closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed |
| on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered |
| himself up cursing, and his comrade said: |
| |
| "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up |
| there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now, |
| and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes |
| --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my |
| opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and |
| took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running |
| yet." |
| |
| Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight |
| was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving. |
| Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening |
| twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box. |
| |
| Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them |
| through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they. |
| They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take |
| the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too |
| much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them |
| take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would |
| have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait |
| there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the |
| misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that |
| the tools were ever brought there! |
| |
| They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come |
| to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him |
| to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought |
| occurred to Tom. |
| |
| "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!" |
| |
| "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting. |
| |
| They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to |
| believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he |
| might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified. |
| |
| Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company |
| would be a palpable improvement, he thought. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXVII |
| |
| THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night. |
| Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it |
| wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and |
| wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay |
| in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he |
| noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if |
| they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it |
| occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There |
| was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the |
| quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen |
| as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys |
| of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references |
| to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and |
| that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed |
| for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found |
| in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden |
| treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a |
| handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable |
| dollars. |
| |
| But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer |
| under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found |
| himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a |
| dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch |
| a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the |
| gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and |
| looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the |
| subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to |
| have been only a dream. |
| |
| "Hello, Huck!" |
| |
| "Hello, yourself." |
| |
| Silence, for a minute. |
| |
| "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got |
| the money. Oh, ain't it awful!" |
| |
| "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was. |
| Dog'd if I don't, Huck." |
| |
| "What ain't a dream?" |
| |
| "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was." |
| |
| "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream |
| it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish |
| devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!" |
| |
| "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!" |
| |
| "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for |
| such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see |
| him, anyway." |
| |
| "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to |
| his Number Two." |
| |
| "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't |
| make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?" |
| |
| "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!" |
| |
| "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this |
| one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here." |
| |
| "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a |
| room--in a tavern, you know!" |
| |
| "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out |
| quick." |
| |
| "You stay here, Huck, till I come." |
| |
| Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public |
| places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No. |
| 2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied. |
| In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The |
| tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he |
| never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did |
| not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some |
| little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the |
| mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was |
| "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before. |
| |
| "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2 |
| we're after." |
| |
| "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?" |
| |
| "Lemme think." |
| |
| Tom thought a long time. Then he said: |
| |
| "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out |
| into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap |
| of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find, |
| and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there |
| and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he |
| said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a |
| chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if |
| he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place." |
| |
| "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!" |
| |
| "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did, |
| maybe he'd never think anything." |
| |
| "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono. |
| I'll try." |
| |
| "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found |
| out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money." |
| |
| "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!" |
| |
| "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't." |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXVIII |
| |
| THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung |
| about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the |
| alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the |
| alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the |
| tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with |
| the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on, |
| Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the |
| keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and |
| retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve. |
| |
| Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday |
| night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's |
| old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the |
| lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before |
| midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones |
| thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had |
| entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of |
| darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by |
| occasional mutterings of distant thunder. |
| |
| Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the |
| towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern. |
| Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a |
| season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a |
| mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it |
| would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive |
| yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have |
| fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and |
| excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and |
| closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and |
| momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away |
| his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to |
| inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the |
| way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came |
| tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!" |
| |
| He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty |
| or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys |
| never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house |
| at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter |
| the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath |
| he said: |
| |
| "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could; |
| but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly |
| get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either. |
| Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and |
| open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the |
| towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!" |
| |
| "What!--what'd you see, Tom?" |
| |
| "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!" |
| |
| "No!" |
| |
| "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old |
| patch on his eye and his arms spread out." |
| |
| "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?" |
| |
| "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and |
| started!" |
| |
| "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!" |
| |
| "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it." |
| |
| "Say, Tom, did you see that box?" |
| |
| "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't |
| see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the |
| floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the |
| room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?" |
| |
| "How?" |
| |
| "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have |
| got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?" |
| |
| "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But |
| say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's |
| drunk." |
| |
| "It is, that! You try it!" |
| |
| Huck shuddered. |
| |
| "Well, no--I reckon not." |
| |
| "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't |
| enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it." |
| |
| There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said: |
| |
| "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun |
| Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll |
| be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll |
| snatch that box quicker'n lightning." |
| |
| "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it |
| every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job." |
| |
| "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a |
| block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window |
| and that'll fetch me." |
| |
| "Agreed, and good as wheat!" |
| |
| "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be |
| daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will |
| you?" |
| |
| "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night |
| for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night." |
| |
| "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?" |
| |
| "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man, |
| Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and |
| any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can |
| spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't |
| ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat |
| WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when |
| he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing." |
| |
| "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't |
| come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night, |
| just skip right around and maow." |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXIX |
| |
| THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news |
| --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both |
| Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment, |
| and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and |
| they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper" |
| with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned |
| in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint |
| the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she |
| consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more |
| moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway |
| the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation |
| and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep |
| awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's |
| "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers |
| with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night. |
| |
| Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and |
| rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything |
| was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar |
| the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe |
| enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few |
| young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat |
| was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the |
| main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss |
| the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs. |
| Thatcher said to Becky, was: |
| |
| "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night |
| with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child." |
| |
| "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma." |
| |
| "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble." |
| |
| Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky: |
| |
| "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's |
| we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll |
| have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll |
| be awful glad to have us." |
| |
| "Oh, that will be fun!" |
| |
| Then Becky reflected a moment and said: |
| |
| "But what will mamma say?" |
| |
| "How'll she ever know?" |
| |
| The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly: |
| |
| "I reckon it's wrong--but--" |
| |
| "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she |
| wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if |
| she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!" |
| |
| The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and |
| Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say |
| nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to |
| Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The |
| thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he |
| could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he |
| give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so |
| why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the |
| evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined |
| to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of |
| the box of money another time that day. |
| |
| Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody |
| hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest |
| distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and |
| laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone |
| through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified |
| with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things |
| began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat |
| in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted: |
| |
| "Who's ready for the cave?" |
| |
| Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there |
| was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the |
| hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door |
| stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and |
| walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat. |
| It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look |
| out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of |
| the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment |
| a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a |
| struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon |
| knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter |
| and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession |
| went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering |
| rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their |
| point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more |
| than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still |
| narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave |
| was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and |
| out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and |
| nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and |
| never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down, |
| and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth |
| under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave. |
| That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of |
| it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion. |
| Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one. |
| |
| The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a |
| mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch |
| avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by |
| surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able |
| to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond |
| the "known" ground. |
| |
| By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth |
| of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow |
| drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of |
| the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no |
| note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had |
| been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's |
| adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat |
| with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for |
| the wasted time but the captain of the craft. |
| |
| Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went |
| glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young |
| people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly |
| tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop |
| at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his |
| attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten |
| o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began |
| to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village |
| betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the |
| silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were |
| put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long |
| time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use? |
| Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in? |
| |
| A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The |
| alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store. |
| The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have |
| something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to |
| remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men |
| would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would |
| stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for |
| security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out |
| and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing |
| them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible. |
| |
| They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left |
| up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to |
| the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the |
| old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and |
| still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old |
| quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the |
| summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach |
| bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and |
| shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him. |
| He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was |
| gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened; |
| no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own |
| heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no |
| footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with |
| winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him! |
| Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then |
| he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at |
| once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He |
| knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile |
| leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them |
| bury it there; it won't be hard to find. |
| |
| Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's: |
| |
| "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is." |
| |
| "I can't see any." |
| |
| This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A |
| deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job! |
| His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had |
| been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to |
| murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he |
| didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and |
| more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun |
| Joe's next--which was-- |
| |
| "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't |
| you?" |
| |
| "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up." |
| |
| "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and |
| maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you |
| before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was |
| rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the |
| justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all. |
| It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped |
| in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on! |
| HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But |
| I'll take it out of HER." |
| |
| "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!" |
| |
| "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was |
| here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't |
| kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch |
| her ears like a sow!" |
| |
| "By God, that's--" |
| |
| "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie |
| her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry, |
| if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake |
| --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll |
| kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill |
| her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this |
| business." |
| |
| "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the |
| better--I'm all in a shiver." |
| |
| "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you, |
| first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's |
| no hurry." |
| |
| Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful |
| than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped |
| gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing, |
| one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one |
| side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same |
| elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig |
| snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was |
| no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now |
| he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned |
| himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but |
| cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so |
| he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he |
| reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads |
| of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows. |
| |
| "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?" |
| |
| "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything." |
| |
| "Why, who are you?" |
| |
| "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!" |
| |
| "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I |
| judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble." |
| |
| "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he |
| got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good |
| friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll |
| promise you won't ever say it was me." |
| |
| "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!" |
| exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad." |
| |
| Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the |
| hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in |
| their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great |
| bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence, |
| and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry. |
| |
| Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill |
| as fast as his legs could carry him. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXX |
| |
| AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck |
| came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door. |
| The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a |
| hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call |
| came from a window: |
| |
| "Who's there!" |
| |
| Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone: |
| |
| "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!" |
| |
| "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!" |
| |
| These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the |
| pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing |
| word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly |
| unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his |
| brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves. |
| |
| "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be |
| ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too |
| --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and |
| stop here last night." |
| |
| "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the |
| pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz |
| I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I |
| didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead." |
| |
| "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but |
| there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they |
| ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right |
| where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along |
| on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar |
| that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It |
| was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use |
| --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol |
| raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get |
| out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place |
| where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy, |
| those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we |
| never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their |
| bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the |
| sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the |
| constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river |
| bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to |
| beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had |
| some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal. |
| But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?" |
| |
| "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them." |
| |
| "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!" |
| |
| "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or |
| twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--" |
| |
| "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods |
| back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys, |
| and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!" |
| |
| The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room |
| Huck sprang up and exclaimed: |
| |
| "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh, |
| please!" |
| |
| "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of |
| what you did." |
| |
| "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!" |
| |
| When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said: |
| |
| "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?" |
| |
| Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too |
| much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he |
| knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for |
| knowing it, sure. |
| |
| The old man promised secrecy once more, and said: |
| |
| "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking |
| suspicious?" |
| |
| Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said: |
| |
| "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so, |
| and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on |
| account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way |
| of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I |
| come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I |
| got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed |
| up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes |
| these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their |
| arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one |
| wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up |
| their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard, |
| by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a |
| rusty, ragged-looking devil." |
| |
| "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?" |
| |
| This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said: |
| |
| "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did." |
| |
| "Then they went on, and you--" |
| |
| "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they |
| sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the |
| dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard |
| swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--" |
| |
| "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!" |
| |
| Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep |
| the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might |
| be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in |
| spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his |
| scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after |
| blunder. Presently the Welshman said: |
| |
| "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head |
| for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard |
| is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you |
| can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that |
| you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me |
| --I won't betray you." |
| |
| Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over |
| and whispered in his ear: |
| |
| "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!" |
| |
| The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said: |
| |
| "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and |
| slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because |
| white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a |
| different matter altogether." |
| |
| During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man |
| said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going |
| to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for |
| marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of-- |
| |
| "Of WHAT?" |
| |
| If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more |
| stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring |
| wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The |
| Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten |
| --then replied: |
| |
| "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?" |
| |
| Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The |
| Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said: |
| |
| "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But |
| what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?" |
| |
| Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would |
| have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing |
| suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a |
| senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture |
| he uttered it--feebly: |
| |
| "Sunday-school books, maybe." |
| |
| Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud |
| and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot, |
| and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket, |
| because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added: |
| |
| "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no |
| wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come |
| out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope." |
| |
| Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such |
| a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel |
| brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the |
| talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure, |
| however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a |
| captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole |
| he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond |
| all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was |
| at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be |
| drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still |
| in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom |
| could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of |
| interruption. |
| |
| Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck |
| jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even |
| remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and |
| gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of |
| citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news |
| had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the |
| visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken. |
| |
| "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more |
| beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow |
| me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him." |
| |
| Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled |
| the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of |
| his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he |
| refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the |
| widow said: |
| |
| "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that |
| noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?" |
| |
| "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come |
| again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of |
| waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard |
| at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back." |
| |
| More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a |
| couple of hours more. |
| |
| There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody |
| was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came |
| that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the |
| sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs. |
| Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said: |
| |
| "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be |
| tired to death." |
| |
| "Your Becky?" |
| |
| "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?" |
| |
| "Why, no." |
| |
| Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly, |
| talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said: |
| |
| "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a |
| boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last |
| night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to |
| settle with him." |
| |
| Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever. |
| |
| "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy. |
| A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face. |
| |
| "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?" |
| |
| "No'm." |
| |
| "When did you see him last?" |
| |
| Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had |
| stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding |
| uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were |
| anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not |
| noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the |
| homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was |
| missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were |
| still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to |
| crying and wringing her hands. |
| |
| The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to |
| street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the |
| whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant |
| insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled, |
| skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror |
| was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and |
| river toward the cave. |
| |
| All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women |
| visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They |
| cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the |
| tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at |
| last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food." |
| Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher |
| sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they |
| conveyed no real cheer. |
| |
| The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with |
| candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck |
| still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with |
| fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came |
| and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him, |
| because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's, |
| and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The |
| Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said: |
| |
| "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off. |
| He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his |
| hands." |
| |
| Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the |
| village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the |
| news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were |
| being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner |
| and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one |
| wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting |
| hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent |
| their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one |
| place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names |
| "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with |
| candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs. |
| Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the |
| last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial |
| of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from |
| the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and |
| then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a |
| glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the |
| echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the |
| children were not there; it was only a searcher's light. |
| |
| Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and |
| the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything. |
| The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the |
| Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the |
| public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck |
| feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly |
| dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance |
| Tavern since he had been ill. |
| |
| "Yes," said the widow. |
| |
| Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed: |
| |
| "What? What was it?" |
| |
| "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn |
| you did give me!" |
| |
| "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer |
| that found it?" |
| |
| The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you |
| before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!" |
| |
| Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great |
| powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone |
| forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should |
| cry. |
| |
| These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the |
| weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself: |
| |
| "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody |
| could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope |
| enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching." |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXXI |
| |
| NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped |
| along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the |
| familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather |
| over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral," |
| "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking |
| began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion |
| began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous |
| avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of |
| names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky |
| walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and |
| talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave |
| whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an |
| overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a |
| little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone |
| sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and |
| ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his |
| small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's |
| gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural |
| stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the |
| ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call, |
| and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their |
| quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of |
| the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to |
| tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern, |
| from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the |
| length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it, |
| wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous |
| passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching |
| spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering |
| crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by |
| many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great |
| stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless |
| water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed |
| themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the |
| creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and |
| darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of |
| this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the |
| first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck |
| Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the |
| cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives |
| plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the |
| perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which |
| stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows. |
| He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best |
| to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep |
| stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the |
| children. Becky said: |
| |
| "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of |
| the others." |
| |
| "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know |
| how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't |
| hear them here." |
| |
| Becky grew apprehensive. |
| |
| "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back." |
| |
| "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better." |
| |
| "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me." |
| |
| "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles |
| out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go |
| through there." |
| |
| "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the |
| girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities. |
| |
| They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long |
| way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything |
| familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time |
| Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging |
| sign, and he would say cheerily: |
| |
| "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right |
| away!" |
| |
| But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently |
| began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate |
| hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all |
| right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words |
| had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!" |
| Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep |
| back the tears, but they would come. At last she said: |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get |
| worse and worse off all the time." |
| |
| "Listen!" said he. |
| |
| Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were |
| conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the |
| empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that |
| resembled a ripple of mocking laughter. |
| |
| "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky. |
| |
| "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and |
| he shouted again. |
| |
| The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it |
| so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened; |
| but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and |
| hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain |
| indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he |
| could not find his way back! |
| |
| "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!" |
| |
| "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want |
| to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up." |
| |
| "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful |
| place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!" |
| |
| She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom |
| was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He |
| sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his |
| bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing |
| regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom |
| begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell |
| to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable |
| situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope |
| again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he |
| would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than |
| she, she said. |
| |
| So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do |
| was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of |
| reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its |
| nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age |
| and familiarity with failure. |
| |
| By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant |
| so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died |
| again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in |
| his pockets--yet he must economize. |
| |
| By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to |
| pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time |
| was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any |
| direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down |
| was to invite death and shorten its pursuit. |
| |
| At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat |
| down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends |
| there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried, |
| and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his |
| encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like |
| sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to |
| sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it |
| grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and |
| by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected |
| somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts |
| wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in |
| his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was |
| stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it. |
| |
| "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I |
| don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again." |
| |
| "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find |
| the way out." |
| |
| "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream. |
| I reckon we are going there." |
| |
| "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying." |
| |
| They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried |
| to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was |
| that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not |
| be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they |
| could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for |
| dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and |
| Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky |
| said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to |
| hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom |
| fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay. |
| Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke |
| the silence: |
| |
| "Tom, I am so hungry!" |
| |
| Tom took something out of his pocket. |
| |
| "Do you remember this?" said he. |
| |
| Becky almost smiled. |
| |
| "It's our wedding-cake, Tom." |
| |
| "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got." |
| |
| "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up |
| people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--" |
| |
| She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky |
| ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was |
| abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky |
| suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he |
| said: |
| |
| "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?" |
| |
| Becky's face paled, but she thought she could. |
| |
| "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink. |
| That little piece is our last candle!" |
| |
| Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to |
| comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said: |
| |
| "Tom!" |
| |
| "Well, Becky?" |
| |
| "They'll miss us and hunt for us!" |
| |
| "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!" |
| |
| "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom." |
| |
| "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are." |
| |
| "When would they miss us, Tom?" |
| |
| "When they get back to the boat, I reckon." |
| |
| "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?" |
| |
| "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they |
| got home." |
| |
| A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw |
| that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night! |
| The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of |
| grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers |
| also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher |
| discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's. |
| |
| The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched |
| it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand |
| alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin |
| column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of |
| utter darkness reigned! |
| |
| How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that |
| she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew |
| was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of |
| a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said |
| it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk, |
| but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said |
| that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was |
| going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it; |
| but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he |
| tried it no more. |
| |
| The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again. |
| A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it. |
| But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only |
| whetted desire. |
| |
| By-and-by Tom said: |
| |
| "SH! Did you hear that?" |
| |
| Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the |
| faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky |
| by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction. |
| Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently |
| a little nearer. |
| |
| "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all |
| right now!" |
| |
| The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was |
| slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be |
| guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be |
| three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any |
| rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could. |
| No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They |
| listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a |
| moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking |
| misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He |
| talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no |
| sounds came again. |
| |
| The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time |
| dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom |
| believed it must be Tuesday by this time. |
| |
| Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It |
| would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the |
| heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to |
| a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the |
| line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended |
| in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and |
| then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands |
| conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the |
| right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding |
| a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout, |
| and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun |
| Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified |
| the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get |
| himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his |
| voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the |
| echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he |
| reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to |
| himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he |
| would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of |
| meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was |
| he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck." |
| |
| But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run. |
| Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought |
| changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed |
| that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now, |
| and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another |
| passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But |
| Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be |
| roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would |
| not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he |
| chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak |
| to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he |
| would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over. |
| |
| Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a |
| show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the |
| cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one |
| of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick |
| with bodings of coming doom. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXXII |
| |
| TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St. |
| Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public |
| prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private |
| prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good |
| news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the |
| quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain |
| the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a |
| great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to |
| hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute |
| at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had |
| drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost |
| white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn. |
| |
| Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village |
| bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad |
| people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're |
| found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed |
| itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open |
| carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its |
| homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring |
| huzzah after huzzah! |
| |
| The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the |
| greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour |
| a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized |
| the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to |
| speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place. |
| |
| Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It |
| would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with |
| the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay |
| upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of |
| the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it |
| withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on |
| an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his |
| kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of |
| the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off |
| speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it, |
| pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad |
| Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would |
| not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that |
| passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good |
| news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was |
| tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he |
| labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when |
| she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how |
| he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat |
| there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom |
| hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition; |
| how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they, |
| "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in" |
| --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them |
| rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home. |
| |
| Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him |
| were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung |
| behind them, and informed of the great news. |
| |
| Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be |
| shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were |
| bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and |
| more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on |
| Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday; |
| but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as |
| if she had passed through a wasting illness. |
| |
| Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but |
| could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or |
| Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still |
| about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas |
| stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff |
| Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found |
| in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying |
| to escape, perhaps. |
| |
| About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to |
| visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting |
| talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge |
| Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The |
| Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him |
| ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he |
| thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said: |
| |
| "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt. |
| But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any |
| more." |
| |
| "Why?" |
| |
| "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago, |
| and triple-locked--and I've got the keys." |
| |
| Tom turned as white as a sheet. |
| |
| "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!" |
| |
| The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face. |
| |
| "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?" |
| |
| "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!" |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXXIII |
| |
| WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of |
| men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well |
| filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that |
| bore Judge Thatcher. |
| |
| When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in |
| the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground, |
| dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing |
| eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer |
| of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own |
| experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but |
| nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now, |
| which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated |
| before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day |
| he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast. |
| |
| Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The |
| great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through, |
| with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock |
| formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had |
| wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if |
| there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been |
| useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could |
| not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had |
| only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass |
| the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily |
| one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices |
| of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The |
| prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to |
| catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their |
| claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at |
| hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages, |
| builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had |
| broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone, |
| wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop |
| that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a |
| clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop |
| was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the |
| foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the |
| Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the |
| massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be |
| falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of |
| history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the |
| thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did |
| this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for |
| this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object |
| to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and |
| many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch |
| the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that |
| pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the |
| wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of |
| the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it. |
| |
| Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked |
| there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and |
| hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all |
| sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as |
| satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the |
| hanging. |
| |
| This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to |
| the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely |
| signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a |
| committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail |
| around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample |
| his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five |
| citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself |
| there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names |
| to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently |
| impaired and leaky water-works. |
| |
| The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have |
| an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the |
| Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned |
| there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he |
| wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said: |
| |
| "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but |
| whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben |
| you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you |
| hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and |
| told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always |
| told me we'd never get holt of that swag." |
| |
| "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern |
| was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you |
| was to watch there that night?" |
| |
| "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I |
| follered Injun Joe to the widder's." |
| |
| "YOU followed him?" |
| |
| "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him, |
| and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it |
| hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right." |
| |
| Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only |
| heard of the Welshman's part of it before. |
| |
| "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question, |
| "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon |
| --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom." |
| |
| "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!" |
| |
| "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on |
| the track of that money again?" |
| |
| "Huck, it's in the cave!" |
| |
| Huck's eyes blazed. |
| |
| "Say it again, Tom." |
| |
| "The money's in the cave!" |
| |
| "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?" |
| |
| "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go |
| in there with me and help get it out?" |
| |
| "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not |
| get lost." |
| |
| "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the |
| world." |
| |
| "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--" |
| |
| "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll |
| agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I |
| will, by jings." |
| |
| "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?" |
| |
| "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?" |
| |
| "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days, |
| now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could." |
| |
| "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go, |
| Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me |
| know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the |
| skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You |
| needn't ever turn your hand over." |
| |
| "Less start right off, Tom." |
| |
| "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little |
| bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these |
| new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's |
| the time I wished I had some when I was in there before." |
| |
| A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who |
| was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles |
| below "Cave Hollow," Tom said: |
| |
| "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the |
| cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see |
| that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's |
| one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now." |
| |
| They landed. |
| |
| "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out |
| of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it." |
| |
| Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly |
| marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said: |
| |
| "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this |
| country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be |
| a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to |
| run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it |
| quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course |
| there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it. |
| Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?" |
| |
| "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?" |
| |
| "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way." |
| |
| "And kill them?" |
| |
| "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom." |
| |
| "What's a ransom?" |
| |
| "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and |
| after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them. |
| That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the |
| women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and |
| awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take |
| your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers |
| --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and |
| after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and |
| after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd |
| turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books." |
| |
| "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate." |
| |
| "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and |
| circuses and all that." |
| |
| By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom |
| in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel, |
| then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps |
| brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through |
| him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of |
| clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the |
| flame struggle and expire. |
| |
| The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and |
| gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently |
| entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the |
| "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not |
| really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet |
| high. Tom whispered: |
| |
| "Now I'll show you something, Huck." |
| |
| He held his candle aloft and said: |
| |
| "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on |
| the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke." |
| |
| "Tom, it's a CROSS!" |
| |
| "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's |
| where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!" |
| |
| Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice: |
| |
| "Tom, less git out of here!" |
| |
| "What! and leave the treasure?" |
| |
| "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain." |
| |
| "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he |
| died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here." |
| |
| "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways |
| of ghosts, and so do you." |
| |
| Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his |
| mind. But presently an idea occurred to him-- |
| |
| "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's |
| ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!" |
| |
| The point was well taken. It had its effect. |
| |
| "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that |
| cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box." |
| |
| Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended. |
| Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the |
| great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result. |
| They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with |
| a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some |
| bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there |
| was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in |
| vain. Tom said: |
| |
| "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the |
| cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on |
| the ground." |
| |
| They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged. |
| Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said: |
| |
| "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the |
| clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now, |
| what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to |
| dig in the clay." |
| |
| "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation. |
| |
| Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches |
| before he struck wood. |
| |
| "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?" |
| |
| Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and |
| removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock. |
| Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he |
| could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to |
| explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended |
| gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to |
| the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and |
| exclaimed: |
| |
| "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!" |
| |
| It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern, |
| along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two |
| or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish |
| well soaked with the water-drip. |
| |
| "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with |
| his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!" |
| |
| "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe, |
| but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake |
| it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box." |
| |
| It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward |
| fashion, but could not carry it conveniently. |
| |
| "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day |
| at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of |
| fetching the little bags along." |
| |
| The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross |
| rock. |
| |
| "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck. |
| |
| "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we |
| go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our |
| orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies." |
| |
| "What orgies?" |
| |
| "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to |
| have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's |
| getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we |
| get to the skiff." |
| |
| They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily |
| out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the |
| skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got |
| under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting |
| cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark. |
| |
| "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the |
| widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it |
| and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it |
| where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till |
| I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute." |
| |
| He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two |
| small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started |
| off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the |
| Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move |
| on, the Welshman stepped out and said: |
| |
| "Hallo, who's that?" |
| |
| "Huck and Tom Sawyer." |
| |
| "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting. |
| Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not |
| as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?" |
| |
| "Old metal," said Tom. |
| |
| "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool |
| away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the |
| foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But |
| that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!" |
| |
| The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about. |
| |
| "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'." |
| |
| Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being |
| falsely accused: |
| |
| "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing." |
| |
| The Welshman laughed. |
| |
| "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you |
| and the widow good friends?" |
| |
| "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway." |
| |
| "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?" |
| |
| This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he |
| found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room. |
| Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed. |
| |
| The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any |
| consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the |
| Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor, |
| and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow |
| received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such |
| looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt |
| Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head |
| at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr. |
| Jones said: |
| |
| "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and |
| Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry." |
| |
| "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys." |
| |
| She took them to a bedchamber and said: |
| |
| "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes |
| --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks, |
| Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you. |
| Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough." |
| |
| Then she left. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXXIV |
| |
| HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't |
| high from the ground." |
| |
| "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?" |
| |
| "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't |
| going down there, Tom." |
| |
| "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care |
| of you." |
| |
| Sid appeared. |
| |
| "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon. |
| Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about |
| you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?" |
| |
| "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this |
| blow-out about, anyway?" |
| |
| "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time |
| it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they |
| helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something, |
| if you want to know." |
| |
| "Well, what?" |
| |
| "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people |
| here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a |
| secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows |
| --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was |
| bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret |
| without Huck, you know!" |
| |
| "Secret about what, Sid?" |
| |
| "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones |
| was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will |
| drop pretty flat." |
| |
| Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way. |
| |
| "Sid, was it you that told?" |
| |
| "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough." |
| |
| "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and |
| that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the |
| hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean |
| things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones. |
| There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and |
| helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if |
| you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!" |
| |
| Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a |
| dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room, |
| after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr. |
| Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the |
| honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was |
| another person whose modesty-- |
| |
| And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the |
| adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the |
| surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and |
| effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However, |
| the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many |
| compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the |
| nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely |
| intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze |
| and everybody's laudations. |
| |
| The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have |
| him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start |
| him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said: |
| |
| "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich." |
| |
| Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept |
| back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But |
| the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it: |
| |
| "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of |
| it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a |
| minute." |
| |
| Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a |
| perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied. |
| |
| "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any |
| making of that boy out. I never--" |
| |
| Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly |
| did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon |
| the table and said: |
| |
| "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!" |
| |
| The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke |
| for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom |
| said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of |
| interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the |
| charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said: |
| |
| "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it |
| don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm |
| willing to allow." |
| |
| The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve |
| thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one |
| time before, though several persons were there who were worth |
| considerably more than that in property. |
| |
| |
| |
| CHAPTER XXXV |
| |
| THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a |
| mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a |
| sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked |
| about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the |
| citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every |
| "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was |
| dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for |
| hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic |
| men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were |
| courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that |
| their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were |
| treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be |
| regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and |
| saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up |
| and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village |
| paper published biographical sketches of the boys. |
| |
| The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge |
| Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had |
| an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day |
| in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got |
| --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A |
| dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in |
| those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that |
| matter. |
| |
| Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no |
| commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When |
| Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her |
| whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded |
| grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that |
| whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine |
| outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that |
| was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to |
| breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky |
| thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he |
| walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight |
| off and told Tom about it. |
| |
| Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some |
| day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the |
| National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school |
| in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or |
| both. |
| |
| Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow |
| Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into |
| it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he |
| could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and |
| brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had |
| not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know |
| for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use |
| napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to |
| church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in |
| his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of |
| civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot. |
| |
| He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up |
| missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in |
| great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched |
| high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third |
| morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads |
| down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found |
| the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some |
| stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with |
| his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of |
| rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and |
| happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing, |
| and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and |
| took a melancholy cast. He said: |
| |
| "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't |
| work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to |
| me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just |
| at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to |
| thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them |
| blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air |
| git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set |
| down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a |
| cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and |
| sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in |
| there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by |
| a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's |
| so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it." |
| |
| "Well, everybody does that way, Huck." |
| |
| "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't |
| STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't |
| take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I |
| got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do |
| everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got |
| to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in |
| my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she |
| wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor |
| scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and |
| injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a |
| woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's |
| going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT, |
| Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's |
| just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead |
| all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and |
| I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into |
| all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take |
| my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not |
| many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable |
| hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder." |
| |
| "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if |
| you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it." |
| |
| "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long |
| enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed |
| smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and |
| I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a |
| cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to |
| come up and spile it all!" |
| |
| Tom saw his opportunity-- |
| |
| "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning |
| robber." |
| |
| "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?" |
| |
| "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you |
| into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know." |
| |
| Huck's joy was quenched. |
| |
| "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?" |
| |
| "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a |
| pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up |
| in the nobility--dukes and such." |
| |
| "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me |
| out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?" |
| |
| "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people |
| say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in |
| it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't." |
| |
| Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally |
| he said: |
| |
| "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if |
| I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom." |
| |
| "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the |
| widow to let up on you a little, Huck." |
| |
| "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of |
| the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd |
| through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?" |
| |
| "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation |
| to-night, maybe." |
| |
| "Have the which?" |
| |
| "Have the initiation." |
| |
| "What's that?" |
| |
| "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's |
| secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and |
| all his family that hurts one of the gang." |
| |
| "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you." |
| |
| "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at |
| midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted |
| house is the best, but they're all ripped up now." |
| |
| "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom." |
| |
| "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with |
| blood." |
| |
| "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than |
| pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be |
| a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon |
| she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet." |
| |
| |
| |
| CONCLUSION |
| |
| SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it |
| must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming |
| the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he |
| knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he |
| writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can. |
| |
| Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are |
| prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the |
| story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they |
| turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that |
| part of their lives at present. |